Selected quad for the lemma: heart_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heart_n aaron_n affection_n people_n 22 3 4.1208 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30242 The Scripture directory for church-officers and people, or, A practical commentary upon the whole third chapter of the first Epistle of St. Paul to the Corinthians to which is annexed The godly and the natural mans choice, upon Psal. 4, vers. 6, 7, 8 / by Anthony Burgesse ... Burgess, Anthony, d. 1664. 1659 (1659) Wing B5656; Wing B5648_CANCELLED; ESTC R3908 509,568 411

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

err_v or_o be_v of_o this_o or_o that_o opinion_n be_v no_o great_a matter_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v faith_n be_v no_o great_a matter_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o great_a matter_n it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o austin_n veritas_fw-la christianorum_fw-la est_fw-la incomparabiliter_fw-la pulchrior_fw-la helenâ_fw-la graecorum_n the_o christian_n truth_n be_v more_o lovely_a than_o the_o grecian_n helena_n for_o who_o there_o be_v much_o strife_n hence_o the_o apostle_n command_v we_o to_o strive_v earnest_o for_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n judas_n five_o 3._o three_o they_o endanger_v salvation_n because_o all_o error_n come_v from_o a_o damnable_a cause_n gal._n 5.20_o heresy_n be_v say_v to_o come_v from_o the_o flesh_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o same_o catalogue_n with_o gross_a sin_n so_o that_o if_o you_o go_v to_o the_o first_o fountain_n you_o sh●ll_v find_v error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o looseness_n in_o practice_n bo●h_o come_v from_o the_o same_o ground_n they_o be_v both_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n though_o they_o be_v different_a stream_n yet_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o one_o ●p●ing_n though_o they_o may_v struggle_v one_o with_o another_o yet_o both_o be_v twin_n in_o the_o same_o womb_n oh_o what_o a_o antidote_n will_v this_o be_v against_o these_o soul-infection_n that_o be_v abroad_o to_o think_v that_o error_n and_o ungodly_a practice_n come_v both_o from_o the_o same_o fountain_n they_o be_v all_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o have_v a_o damnable_a cause_n four_o error_n in_o judgement_n endanger_v salvation_n because_o they_o lead_v into_o sinful_a and_o dangerous_a practice_n in_o philosophy_n we_o be_v ●old_a of_o the_o great_a connexion_n that_o be_v between_o the_o understanding_n will_n and_o affection_n now_o the_o understanding_n that_o be_v the_o sun_n in_o this_o firmament_n and_o if_o that_o be_v in_o a_o eclipse_n you_o know_v that_o evil_n be_v portend_v thereby_o the_o understanding_n be_v the_o counsellor_n and_o if_o that_o be_v corrupt_a the_o will_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v very_o sinful_a and_o unruly_a use_v of_o admonition_n to_o take_v heed_n we_o be_v not_o lead_v aside_o with_o any_o error_n or_o corrupt_a doctrine_n you_o see_v death_n be_v in_o these_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o in_o lust_n yea_o if_o the_o mind_n be_v corrupt_a all_o else_o will_v be_v corrupt_a if_o the_o eye_n be_v dark_a the_o whole_a body_n will_v be_v dark_a error_n will_v breed_v looseness_n and_o profaneness_n of_o life_n they_o be_v a_o disease_n in_o the_o choice_a part_n of_o a_o man_n and_o know_v it_o be_v not_o thy_o wisdom_n thy_o care_n can_v preserve_v thou_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n through_o his_o word_n that_o lead_v we_o into_o truth_n christ_n be_v the_o truth_n the_o way_n and_o the_o life_n john_n 14.6_o the_o great_a learning_n and_o knowledge_n will_v not_o keep_v a_o man_n learned_a man_n have_v be_v heretic_n but_o two_o thing_n will_v especial_o keep_v we_o 1._o humility_n and_o lowliness_n of_o mind_n to_o such_o god_n give_v grace_n to_o babe_n and_o suckling_n he_o reveal_v himself_o and_o 2._o a_o holy_a conformity_n to_o god_n will_v so_o far_o as_o we_o know_v when_o we_o do_v not_o detain_v truth_n as_o a_o prisoner_n in_o our_o life_n doct._n 2._o whereas_o you_o see_v a_o eminent_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n build_v but_o hay_n and_o stubble_n be_v yet_o hardly_o save_v we_o may_v hint_n this_o doctrine_n though_o not_o insist_v on_o it_o man_n that_o every_o godly_a man_n though_o never_o so_o eminent_a yet_o be_v very_o difficult_o save_v if_o hay_n and_o stubble_n will_v put_v we_o to_o such_o danger_n what_o then_o will_v evident_a poison_n if_o these_o error_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v so_o hardly_o prevent_v what_o will_v the_o constant_a lust_n and_o daily_a infirmity_n even_o of_o all_o man_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v the_o righteous_a man_n be_v scarce_o save_v 1_o pet._n 4.18_o which_o although_o some_o understand_v of_o a_o temporal_a salvation_n he_o be_v very_o hardly_o deliver_v from_o those_o temporal_a affliction_n that_o fall_v out_o in_o this_o life_n yet_o by_o consequence_n it_o reach_v to_o eternal_a salvation_n hence_o be_v that_o command_n to_o work_v out_o our_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a phil._n 2.12_o yea_o paul_n who_o have_v one_o foot_n in_o heaven_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o keep_v under_o his_o body_n lest_o while_o he_o preach_v to_o other_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v a_o reprobate_n 1_o cor._n 9_o ult_n now_o the_o ground_n of_o these_o truth_n be_v first_o from_o the_o exactness_n and_o strictness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n godliness_n be_v on_o the_o high_a hill_n as_o he_o place_v virtue_n strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n luke_n 13.24_o be_v in_o a_o agony_n yea_o how_o straight_o be_v it_o as_o in_o matth_n 7_o 14_o by_o exclamation_n few_o do_v enter_v therein_o to_o lay_v out_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n or_o godliness_n from_o scripture-rule_n will_v be_v almost_o like_o tully_n description_n of_o a_o perfect_a orator_n or_o plato_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o be_v one_o who_o trust_v in_o they_o as_o one_o evangelist_n say_v mar._n 10.24_o the_o disciple_n cry_v out_o who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v they_o do_v not_o say_v what_o rich_a man_n but_o who_o can_v be_v save_v because_o every_o man_n have_v something_a or_o other_o be_v trust_v in_o as_o well_o as_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o his_o riches_n second_o the_o difficulty_n do_v appear_v from_o that_o remainder_n and_o relic_n or_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o every_o man_n which_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o break_v out_o our_o saviour_n bid_v hi●_n disciple_n beware_v of_o drunkenness_n and_o surfeit_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v ●arre_o from_o it_o luke_n 21.34_o paul_n how_o do_v he_o mourn_v under_o the_o powerful_a vigour_n of_o sin_n still_o abide_v in_o he_o rom._n 7._o yea_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o a_o combat_n in_o all_o the_o flesh_n lust_v after_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5._o so_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n he_o be_v in_o constant_a danger_n of_o be_v undo_v there_o be_v heart_n against_o heart_n affection_n against_o affection_n etc._n etc._n three_o there_o be_v many_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n which_o god_n bring_v on_o his_o people_n and_o they_o do_v much_o endanger_v do_v not_o god_n break_v out_o upon_o aaron_n eli_n david_n and_o moses_n very_o dangerous_o as_o if_o he_o will_v have_v cast_v they_o quite_o off_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n bring_v in_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o righteous_a man_n salvation_n upon_o that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4.17_o so_o that_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o tempest_n and_o rock_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n any_o can_v come_v to_o the_o haven_n use_v of_o exhortation_n be_v quicken_v up_o to_o more_o exact_a strict_a and_o diligent_a walk_n if_o paul_n that_o know_v how_o to_o abound_v and_o want_v and_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n who_o be_v like_o a_o giant_n run_v his_o race_n and_o yet_o hardly_o get_v to_o heaven_n where_o will_v thou_o appear_v hear_v what_o he_o say_v i_o press_v forward_o i_o forget_v what_o be_v behind_o if_o i_o may_v attain_v to_o the_o prize_n of_o the_o high_a call_n oh_o then_o how_o inexcusable_a be_v thy_o negligence_n thy_o dissoluteness_n be_v thy_o life_n a_o strive_v a_o agony_n be_v thou_o like_v one_o in_o a_o combat_n and_o conflict_n by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v the_o number_n of_o man_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v be_v very_o few_o there_o be_v so_o few_o that_o strive_v that_o pray_v that_o work_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a that_o be_v violent_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o get_v it_o by_o force_n verse_n 16._o know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o the_o apostle_n though_o he_o alter_v his_o metaphor_n yet_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o matter_n in_o the_o verse_n before_o he_o compare_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n to_o a_o building_n here_o he_o show_v what_o kind_n of_o build_v it_o be_v even_o a_o sacred_a holy_a building_n temple_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n so_o that_o as_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o old_a which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n whosoever_o do_v bring_v in_o any_o unclean_a and_o unconsecrated_a thing_n to_o the_o temple_n he_o do_v pollute_v it_o and_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v thus_o all_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n or_o
not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n therefore_o those_o crafty_a principle_n in_o popery_n to_o keep_v man_n in_o ignorance_n to_o make_v it_o the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v reign_v and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v be_v to_o lead_v man_n blindfold_o into_o hell_n second_o the_o principle_n be_v foundation_n and_o be_v the_o root_n now_o he_o will_v be_v a_o unwise_a artificer_n that_o shall_v intend_v to_o rear_v up_o a_o house_n and_o lay_v no_o foundation_n so_o that_o as_o long_o as_o we_o preach_v to_o a_o people_n ignorant_a of_o these_o we_o have_v no_o bottom_n to_o stand_v upon_o principle_n be_v like_o seed_n every_o poor_a man_n will_v make_v hard_a shift_n to_o get_v seed_n to_o sow_v with_o three_o without_o this_o good_a foundation_n lay_v no_o preach_v or_o duty_n can_v have_v any_o spiritual_a effect_n for_o why_o be_v not_o the_o bruit_n beast_n why_o not_o fool_n and_o mad_a man_n capable_a of_o any_o benefit_n by_o the_o word_n preach_v but_o because_o the_o one_o have_v not_o rational_a soul_n and_o the_o other_o though_o they_o have_v they_o yet_o the_o actual_a use_n and_o exercise_v of_o reason_n be_v bind_v up_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o all_o people_n destitute_a of_o fundamental_a principle_n all_o be_v do_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n they_o be_v barbarian_n to_o we_o and_o we_o to_o they_o four_o conversion_n can_v be_v wrought_v without_o some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o principle_n we_o can_v believe_v in_o he_o we_o do_v not_o know_v we_o can_v love_v he_o we_o do_v not_o know_v the_o heathen_n they_o indeed_o build_v a_o altar_n to_o the_o unknown_a god_n but_o it_o be_v unsufferable_a for_o a_o christian_a if_o a_o christian_a shall_v perform_v his_o duty_n to_o a_o unknown_a god_n or_o unknown_a christ_n they_o must_v understand_v and_o so_o be_v convert_v isa_n 6.10_o god_n make_v light_n shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n 5._o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o principle_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n you_o that_o be_v ignorant_a total_o of_o they_o can_v upon_o any_o just_a ground_n hope_v for_o salvation_n this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v joh._n 17.2_o they_o be_v a_o people_n of_o no_o understanding_n therefore_o he_o that_o make_v they_o will_v not_o save_v they_o isa_n 27.11_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 2_o tim_n 3.7_o oh_o then_o how_o shall_v you_o who_o sit_v in_o this_o palpable_a darkness_n be_v afraid_a people_z use_v to_o fear_v in_o the_o dark_a and_o certain_o thou_o shall_v bewail_v thyself_o i_o be_o a_o old_a man_n a_o old_a woman_n i_o have_v live_v thus_o long_o where_o the_o word_n have_v be_v preach_v and_o yet_o how_o little_a do_v i_o know_v six_o none_o can_v pretend_v excuse_n for_o their_o ignorance_n herein_o to_o have_v much_o knowledge_n in_o religion_n there_o be_v require_v much_o time_n and_o study_n many_o ability_n better_a education_n but_o for_o these_o foundation_n none_o can_v excuse_v themselves_o because_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o in_o a_o plain_a easy_a manner_n he_o that_o run_v may_v read_v they_o so_o that_o it_o be_v our_o slowthfulness_n if_o we_o do_v not_o know_v seven_o want_v of_o sound_a knowledge_n in_o these_o make_v many_o error_n and_o heresy_n many_o affect_v to_o speak_v and_o hold_v opinion_n in_o religion_n before_o ever_o they_o be_v well_o instruct_v those_o that_o do_v not_o hold_v christ_n the_o head_n they_o present_o fall_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o angel_n the_o empty_a straw_n be_v carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n he_o that_o have_v no_o bottom_n move_v up_o and_o down_o use_v of_o sharp_a reproof_n to_o such_o who_o continue_v in_o this_o damnable_a ignorance_n and_o that_o though_o they_o live_v where_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v if_o the_o corinthian_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v because_o they_o can_v not_o bear_v strong_a food_n what_o then_o belong_v to_o they_o who_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o milk_n the_o very_a principle_n of_o religion_n be_v too_o hard_o for_o they_o they_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v when_o you_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n thus_o they_o be_v as_o bruit_v beast_n make_v to_o be_v destroy_v you_o may_v find_v as_o much_o knowledge_n of_o god_n among_o pagan_n and_o heathen_n as_o among_o some_o that_o live_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n some_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n i_o speak_v to_o your_o shame_n many_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v speak_v to_o the_o confusion_n of_o our_o face_n how_o do_v this_o darkness_n cover_v man_n face_n by_o aitheism_n profaneness_n and_o great_a negligence_n they_o make_v it_o not_o their_o business_n to_o inquire_v after_o knowledge_n they_o great_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n prayer_n hear_v read_v instruct_v of_o other_o say_v a_o man_n be_v great_o ignorant_a and_o you_o say_v he_o have_v enough_o to_o damn_v he_o to_o all_o eternity_n he_o will_v commit_v any_o sin_n he_o will_v embrace_v any_o idolatry_n even_o as_o the_o man_n in_o the_o dark_a stumble_v and_o know_v not_o where_o he_o go_v especial_o this_o be_v a_o sure_a bar_n against_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o that_o require_v discern_v of_o the_o lord_n body_n of_o examine_v themselves_o which_o can_v never_o be_v do_v without_o a_o competent_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n in_o religion_n for_o hitherto_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v it_o neither_o now_o be_v you_o able_a these_o word_n contain_v the_o reason_n of_o paul_n prudence_n in_o dispense_n spiritual_a meat_n to_o the_o corinthian_n milk_n and_o not_o solid_a food_n we_o may_v not_o preach_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o people_n there_o be_v giant_n and_o dwarf_n there_o be_v carnal_a and_o spiritual_a the_o word_n have_v no_o difficulty_n only_o our_o translator_n supply_v a_o word_n for_o in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v thus_o only_o for_o hitherto_o you_o be_v not_o able_a neither_o be_v you_o now_o able_a they_o supply_v to_o bear_v or_o to_o concoct_v and_o digest_v for_o he_o pursue_v that_o metaphor_n of_o make_v truth_n the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n veritas_fw-la est_fw-la cibus_fw-la animi_fw-la such_o a_o defective_a expression_n we_o have_v of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d potero_fw-la isa_n 1.13_o speak_v of_o their_o solemn_a feast_n i_o can_v bear_v they_o and_o psal_n 101.5_o he_o that_o have_v a_o high_a look_n i_o will_v not_o bear_v so_o that_o the_o word_n denote_v the_o weakness_n and_o infancy_n of_o these_o corinthian_n and_o that_o though_o they_o have_v give_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o chr●st_n and_o have_v daily_o watering_n by_o the_o apostle_n after_o their_o first_o plantation_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n and_o just_a reproach_n to_o a_o people_n observe_v that_o have_v live_v long_o under_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n if_o they_o have_v not_o get_v the_o due_a profit_n by_o it_o the_o word_n preach_v be_v commend_v in_o scripture_n for_o several_a and_o divine_a operation_n now_o if_o thou_o have_v many_o year_n be_v under_o these_o dropping_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o dry_a wilderness_n how_o unsufferable_a be_v it_o in_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n you_o think_v it_o not_o to_o be_v endure_v you_o send_v your_o child_n to_o be_v teach_v and_o if_o in_o many_o year_n they_o shall_v not_o yet_o be_v able_a to_o spell_v the_o alphabet_n you_o will_v think_v all_o cost_n in_o vain_a if_o year_n after_o year_n you_o plough_n and_o prepare_v a_o field_n for_o corn_n and_o yet_o there_o come_v up_o nothing_o but_o weed_n and_o thistle_n this_o be_v a_o vanity_n of_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n what_o the_o heathen_n speak_v of_o their_o tantalus_n to_o be_v up_o to_o the_o chin_n in_o water_n and_o yet_o ready_a to_o perish_v for_o thirst_n be_v true_a in_o thou_o for_o open_v this_o let_v we_o consider_v effect_n what_o be_v those_o choice_n and_o noble_a effect_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o defect_n whereof_o a_o people_n may_v be_v severe_o blame_v and_o they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n intellectual_a upon_o the_o understanding_n or_o practical_a upon_o the_o heart_n affection_n and_o outward_a conversation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v both_o a_o shine_a and_o a_o burn_a light_n and_o for_o the_o first_o that_o people_n will_v be_v find_v without_o all_o excuse_n and_o under_o a_o great_a condemnation_n who_o have_v not_o find_v those_o intellectual_a effect_n first_o illumination_n and_o enlighten_v of_o the_o understanding_n to_o believe_v the_o first_o principle_n and_o foundation_n of_o religion_n every_o science_n and_o so_o that_o of_o divinity_n have_v its_o first_o principle_n
christ_n in_o their_o congregation_n ambition_n pride_n self-seeking_a this_o have_v always_o make_v division_n for_o this_o have_v make_v man_n set_v up_o themselves_o and_o not_o christ_n oh_o what_o a_o comfort_n and_o glorious_a sight_n will_v it_o be_v to_o see_v the_o ministry_n not_o gratify_v party_n not_o make_v interest_n but_o affectionate_o advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n though_o they_o be_v account_v as_o the_o off_o scour_v of_o the_o world_n paul_n he_o give_v we_o this_o example_n and_o we_o be_v to_o follow_v he_o the_o second_o end_n in_o which_o they_o be_v to_o agree_v be_v the_o conversion_n of_o man_n and_o edify_v of_o they_o up_o in_o faith_n and_o godliness_n if_o this_o be_v our_o end_n that_o will_v quick_o dispel_v all_o other_o thing_n that_o obtrude_v thmselve_n the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o tender_a bowel_n herein_o will_v quick_o make_v all_o one_o but_o when_o man_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o be_v contrary_a also_o in_o the_o mean_n when_o we_o desire_v to_o preach_v our_o own_o notion_n and_o our_o own_o opinion_n more_o than_o to_o procure_v your_o salvation_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v as_o many_o opinion_n as_o there_o be_v minister_n so_o then_o these_o two_o thing_n will_v wonderful_o unite_v god_n glory_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o all_o our_o preach_n study_v and_o labour_v aught_o to_o be_v for_o this_o affection_n three_o there_o shall_v be_v unity_n in_o affection_n to_o love_v one_o another_o to_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o ability_n and_o gift_n of_o one_o another_o envy_n and_o pride_n be_v apt_a to_o get_v even_o among_o the_o best_a you_o see_v christ_n own_o disciple_n they_o be_v strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o one_o ambitious_o affect_v to_o be_v over_o another_o and_o even_o in_o those_o pure_a apostolical_a time_n you_o may_v read_v of_o a_o diotrephes_n that_o love_v pre-eminence_n above_o his_o brethren_n he_o be_v not_o according_a to_o his_o name_n for_o he_o be_v not_o nourish_v and_o teach_v by_o christ_n to_o do_v so_o our_o saviour_n foreseeing_a what_o mischief_n this_o will_v bring_v to_o his_o church_n do_v again_o and_o again_o press_v love_n among_o those_o that_o be_v to_o labour_v in_o his_o church_n it_o be_v a_o gracious_a expression_n of_o calvin_n concern_v luther_n who_o be_v a_o hot_a man_n and_o apt_a to_o break_v out_o in_o violent_a expression_n oh_o say_v calvin_n i_o honour_v luther_n as_o a_o eminent_a servant_n and_o instrument_n of_o god_n though_o he_o shall_v call_v i_o a_o devil_n a_o thousand_o time_n over_o when_o our_o saviour_n have_v compare_v his_o disciple_n to_o salt_n to_o show_v it_o be_v not_o his_o meaning_n they_o shall_v be_v salt_n to_o one_o another_o he_o say_v have_v salt_n in_o yourselves_o and_o peace_n one_o with_o another_o mar_n 9.50_o there_o must_v be_v salt_n and_o peace_n oh_o but_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o reuben_n so_o may_v we_o say_v for_o the_o division_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o division_n of_o the_o people_n be_v great_a thought_n of_o heart_n now_o to_o amplify_v this_o we_o shall_v show_v how_o sad_a a_o temptation_n it_o be_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o god_n when_o the_o ministry_n be_v not_o one_o either_o in_o doctrine_n end_n or_o affection_n church_n and_o then_o what_o people_n shall_v do_v in_o such_o case_n first_o when_o the_o ministry_n be_v not_o one_o this_o be_v apt_a in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o beget_v atheism_n and_o irreligion_n in_o the_o people_n they_o begin_v to_o think_v that_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o matter_n of_o imagination_n or_o invention_n or_o else_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v regard_v it_o no_o more_o they_o will_v look_v after_o it_o no_o more_o oh_o woe_n be_v to_o the_o world_n because_o of_o offence_n in_o this_o kind_n he_o that_o make_v a_o division_n from_o the_o true_a doctrine_n or_o true_a end_n of_o the_o ministry_n he_o have_v better_o never_o have_v be_v bear_v he_o that_o be_v a_o firebrand_n here_o may_v fear_v to_o be_v a_o firebrand_n in_o hell_n how_o many_o atheist_n and_o profane_a scoffer_n may_v thou_o make_v by_o this_o division_n of_o thou_o second_o where_o there_o be_v not_o this_o unity_n it_o do_v much_o grieve_v and_o unsettle_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v they_o can_v tell_v what_o to_o take_v to_o such_o godly_a man_n say_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n other_o as_o godly_a say_n it_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n now_o to_o those_o that_o be_v tender_a and_o will_v not_o sin_v for_o a_o whole_a world_n this_o be_v a_o very_a rack_a and_o torture_v of_o their_o conscience_n oh_o what_o shall_v they_o do_v three_o when_o there_o be_v not_o this_o unity_n profaneness_n and_o ungodliness_n do_v the_o more_o increase_n godliness_n do_v exceed_o decay_v in_o the_o power_n of_o it_o for_o while_o the_o minister_n shall_v all_o as_o one_o man_n labour_v to_o destroy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n to_o discourage_v impiety_n to_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a sad_a that_o he_o may_v return_v from_o his_o evil_a way_n they_o common_o le●ve_v this_o and_o all_o their_o preach_n be_v to_o maintain_v those_o particular_a opinion_n and_o to_o set_v up_o that_o particular_a way_n which_o they_o walk_v in_o now_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o apostle_n take_v off_o much_o from_o such_o controversal_a dispute_n in_o which_o the_o essence_n of_o godliness_n do_v not_o consist_v as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o in_o joy_n and_o peace_n and_o righteousness_n rom._n 14.17_o so_o it_o be_v good_a to_o have_v the_o heart_n establish_v with_o grace_n and_o not_o with_o meat_n heb._n 14_o 9_o and_o in_o other_o place_n the_o apostle_n call_v those_o thing_n vain_a which_o do_v not_o edify_v not_o that_o the_o least_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v neglect_v yea_o all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v try_v but_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o main_a the_o one_o thing_n necessary_a be_v to_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o last_o these_o division_n do_v wonderful_o harden_v and_o confirm_v the_o papist_n in_o their_o way_n they_o say_v how_o do_v the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n spirit_n agree_v that_o which_o one_o say_v the_o other_o contradict_v now_o although_o the_o same_o may_v be_v retort_v on_o they_o the_o manifold_a difference_n in_o popery_n and_o that_o about_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n viz._n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n or_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n yea_o several_a pope_n have_v at_o the_o same_o time_n pretend_v and_o in_o arm_n fight_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n though_o i_o say_v these_o may_v be_v retort_v on_o they_o and_o stop_v their_o mouth_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o such_o difference_n do_v wonderful_o scandalize_v and_o harden_v people_n especial_o those_o that_o consult_v not_o with_o scripture_n and_o seek_v to_o be_v antidote_v against_o such_o temptation_n and_o for_o that_o take_v these_o prescript_n 1._o do_v not_o thou_o by_o thy_o pragmatical_a m●dling_n widen_v the_o difference_n divide_v and_o raise_v more_o dust_n in_o this_o chapter_n you_o have_v the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o argument_n against_o division_n and_o sometime_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o teacher_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o hearer_n the_o indiscretion_n and_o hot_a busy_a carriage_n of_o the_o disciple_n do_v sometime_o make_v a_o great_a distance_n among_o the_o teacher_n you_o see_v john_n disciple_n out_o of_o emulation_n and_o envy_n do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o stir_v up_o john_n spirit_n against_o christ_n but_o how_o gracious_o do_v he_o quench_v those_o spark_n by_o that_o humility_n of_o he_o i_o must_v decrease_v but_o he_o must_v increase_v john_n 3.30_o 2._o consider_v this_o that_o those_o that_o be_v godly_a do_v agree_v in_o the_o main_a fundamental_a point_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o they_o do_v not_o fail_v in_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o religion_n for_o other_o thing_n we_o can_v expect_v unity_n in_o this_o life_n as_o long_o as_o some_o have_v more_o knowledge_n than_o other_o and_o more_o grace_n and_o self-denial_n than_o other_o so_o long_o there_o will_v be_v difference_n you_o see_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n have_v a_o sharp_a contest_v with_o one_o another_o and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o corrupt_a censuring_n that_o the_o strong_a and_o weak_a christian_n have_v of_o one_o another_o roman_n 1.4_o 3._o do_v thou_o labour_v to_o be_v inform_v with_o a_o true_a and_o divine_a faith_n out_o of_o the_o word_n
as_o babe_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o beget_v anew_o by_o the_o word_n can_v we_o expect_v any_o increase_n or_o fruit_n when_o man_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o plant_n plant_v by_o god_n many_o congregation_n be_v like_o golgotha_n place_v not_o of_o dead_a skull_n but_o of_o dead_a heart_n oh_o how_o short_a do_v our_o people_n come_v of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n these_o very_a corinthian_n see_v how_o paul_n commend_v they_o 1_o cor._n 1.5_o 7._o you_o be_v enrich_v in_o all_o utterance_n and_o knowledge_n and_o yet_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o they_o alas_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n have_v far_o high_o and_o large_a degree_n of_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n to_o press_v you_o to_o if_o once_o the_o foundation_n be_v lay_v three_o there_o be_v many_o choice_n and_o excellent_a duty_n in_o the_o exercise_n whereof_o a_o christian_a will_v have_v much_o joy_n and_o bring_v much_o glory_n to_o god_n but_o the_o ignorance_n of_o a_o people_n make_v the_o mixister_n not_o so_o frequent_o urge_v those_o because_o other_o thing_n must_v be_v do_v first_o the_o duty_n be_v these_o let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v plentiful_o in_o you_o teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o col._n 3_o 6._o and_o again_o exhort_v and_o provoke_v one_o another_o &c_n &c_n heb._n 10.14_o thus_o the_o father_n he_o be_v to_o make_v his_o family_n like_o the_o church_n of_o god_n he_o be_v to_o instruct_v those_o that_o be_v under_o he_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n husband_n they_o be_v to_o be_v such_o as_o can_v inform_v their_o wife_n if_o they_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n in_o religion_n let_v they_o ask_v their_o husband_n at_o home_n say_v paul_n 1_o cor._n 14.35_o so_o family_n be_v to_o serve_v god_n as_o joshua_n and_o abraham_n resolve_v which_o be_v by_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v press_v by_o a_o minister_n upon_o a_o people_n gross_o ignorant_a how_o few_o parent_n or_o master_n have_v you_o that_o know_v how_o to_o serve_v god_n in_o their_o family_n how_o few_o husband_n that_o know_v how_o to_o inform_v their_o wife_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o how_o few_o neighbour_n be_v able_a to_o teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o out_o of_o the_o word_n whereas_o the_o constant_a exercise_n of_o those_o duty_n will_v bring_v admirable_a glory_n to_o god_n will_v be_v infinite_a comfort_n to_o faithful_a minister_n but_o ignorance_n and_o dulness_n have_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o all_o people_n how_o many_o family_n be_v there_o who_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o swear_v and_o curse_v and_o go_v to_o bed_n and_o rise_v like_o so_o many_o bruit_n beast_n and_o you_o can_v no_o more_o expect_v religious_a duty_n from_o they_o than_o understanding_n and_o discourse_n from_o the_o worm_n that_o crawl_v on_o the_o ground_n oh_o that_o we_o can_v once_o preach_v to_o our_o auditor_n as_o spiritual_a in_o this_o particular_a four_o the_o ignorance_n of_o a_o people_n restrain_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n that_o they_o can_v so_o powerful_o press_v at_o first_o the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o leave_v of_o all_o superstitious_a and_o traditional_a way_n of_o worship_n but_o they_o must_v by_o degree_n here_o a_o little_a and_o there_o a_o little_a as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o thus_o our_o saviour_n show_v in_o that_o forementioned_a place_n luke_n 5._o no_o man_n put_v new_a wine_n in_o old_a bottle_n the_o people_n be_v offend_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n do_v not_o follow_v that_o external_a worship_n which_o other_o do_v and_o he_o tell_v they_o it_o be_v with_o auditor_n and_o disciple_n as_o with_o bottle_n if_o old_a they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v new_a and_o spirituous_a wine_n hence_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o disciple_n at_o another_o time_n i_o have_v many_o ohing_n to_o tell_v you_o but_o you_o can_v hear_v they_o now_o therefore_o they_o be_v to_o stay_v at_o jerusalem_n till_o they_o be_v endow_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o above_o if_o we_o shall_v at_o first_o press_v a_o people_n plunge_v into_o all_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n to_o the_o high_a and_o exact_a worship_n of_o god_n they_o will_v judge_v it_o madness_n hence_o our_o saviour_n by_o degree_n instruct_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n who_o worship_v she_o know_v not_o what_o and_o calvin_n commend_v that_o know_a counsel_n of_o austin_n to_o a_o bishop_n who_o desire_v his_o advice_n about_o discipline_n where_o the_o sin_n of_o drunkenness_n have_v general_o infect_v all_o which_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v proceed_v wise_o and_o mild_o monendo_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la minando_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o cyprian_n say_v of_o himself_o in_o remittendis_fw-la delictis_fw-la penò_fw-la ipse_fw-la delinquo_fw-la yet_o this_o must_v not_o be_v use_v for_o slothfulness_n and_o remissness_n in_o church_n reformation_n for_o how_o great_o have_v god_n bless_v even_o the_o endeavour_n of_o a_o few_o against_o universal_a impiety_n thus_o much_o for_o ignorance_n of_o then_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o people_n make_v they_o uncapable_a of_o many_o precious_a truth_n in_o religion_n as_o first_o the_o minister_n labour_n be_v most_o spend_v in_o discover_v the_o damnable_a nature_n of_o gross_a sin_n take_v they_o off_o from_o their_o brutish_a beastly_a way_n and_o as_o for_o spiritual_a sin_n unbelief_n diffidence_n in_o the_o promise_n carnal_a confidence_n in_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n these_o they_o can_v so_o much_o press_v against_o because_o such_o auditor_n come_v far_o short_a of_o civility_n and_o therefore_o much_o less_o reach_n to_o piety_n hence_o though_o they_o can_v go_v along_o with_o sermon_n that_o urge_v the_o leave_n of_o gross_a sin_n yet_o those_o about_o regeneration_n and_o a_o new_a creature_n they_o can_v perceive_v thus_o our_o saviour_n if_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o earthly_a thing_n and_o you_o understand_v xot_v how_o can_v you_o heavenly_a john_n 3.12_o second_o to_o a_o people_n live_v in_o gross_a sin_n we_o can_v so_o frequent_o and_o glorious_o preach_v jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n we_o can_v make_v it_o our_o work_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o its_o glory_n we_o can_v preach_v of_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v we_o can_v commend_v the_o rest_a and_o rely_v upon_o christ_n for_o before_o this_o be_v do_v man_n must_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o particular_a sin_n thus_o paul_n do_v to_o felix_n when_o desire_a to_o preach_v of_o faith_n in_o christ_n thus_o peter_n endeavour_v to_o prick_v the_o conscience_n of_o those_o that_o murder_v christ_n the_o life_n of_o glory_n three_o the_o perform_n of_o duty_n in_o a_o spiritual_a and_o gracious_a manner_n so_o as_o to_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n and_o to_o enjoy_v he_o this_o also_o be_v too_o high_a for_o sinful_a wicked_a man_n wisdom_n be_v too_o high_a for_o a_o fool_n say_v solomon_n and_o so_o the_o spiritual_a pray_v hear_v enjoy_v of_o god_n in_o those_o ordinance_n be_v a_o paradox_n and_o mystery_n to_o they_o what_o a_o glorious_a expression_n be_v that_o we_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v transform_v into_o his_o image_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o but_o the_o world_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o know_v these_o thing_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o 1_o cor._n 2._o use_v to_o arouse_v and_o awaken_v people_n out_o of_o their_o ignorance_n and_o sinfulness_n if_o aristotle_n think_v a_o young_a man_n no_o fit_a auditor_n for_o his_o moral_n because_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o unruly_a affection_n how_o fit_a can_v people_n blind_a in_o mind_n corrupt_v in_o affection_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n how_o great_a be_v the_o labour_n and_o grief_n of_o a_o minister_n to_o preach_v to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o babe_n in_o christ_n the_o very_a ox_n and_o horse_n know_v the_o noise_n and_o command_v of_o the_o driver_n and_o turn_v as_o he_o will_v have_v they_o only_a man_n be_v more_o unruly_a and_o brutish_a refuse_v to_o order_v his_o step_n as_o he_o be_v command_v how_o much_o of_o the_o study_n labour_n part_n and_o godliness_n of_o a_o minister_n may_v be_v lose_v through_o the_o indociblenesse_n of_o hearer_n though_o we_o preach_v not_o latin_a yet_o the_o matter_n we_o preach_v may_v be_v so_o spiritual_a heavenly_a that_o it_o may_v be_v as_o untelligible_a as_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n we_o will_v go_v on_o to_o perfection_n be_v not_o your_o slowness_n slothfulness_n a_o obstruction_n be_v not_o christ_n nor_o the_o glorious_a promise_n no_o more_o publish_v thank_v we_o ourselves_o for_o this_o to_o such_o be_v the_o wound_n the_o blow_n and_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o
saviour_n to_o those_o that_o do_v not_o find_v themselves_o lose_v to_o commend_v a_o physician_n to_o those_o that_o find_v themselves_o whole_a to_o pour_v oil_n where_o there_o be_v no_o wound_n be_v to_o pervert_v all_o order_n ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v say_v our_o saviour_n joh_n 7.37_o and_o come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v heavy_a lade_v mat._n 11.28_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n convince_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n and_o then_o of_o righteousness_n oh_o but_o how_o much_o unwise_a and_o unfaithful_a preach_n be_v there_o in_o this_o respect_n how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o strengthen_v wicked_a man_n heart_n and_o make_v they_o not_o sad_a who_o god_n will_v have_v make_v sad_a that_o daub_v with_o untemppered_a mortar_n that_o say_v to_o every_o profane_a man_n if_o he_o do_v but_o cry_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o it_o be_v this_o daub_v and_o soothe_v up_o people_n in_o their_o wickedness_n strike_v out_o all_o fear_n of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n that_o make_v they_o wallow_v like_o swine_n in_o their_o filth_n to_o such_o to_o preach_v no_o comfort_n but_o the_o law_n and_o threaten_n but_o to_o those_o that_o be_v break_v in_o heart_n a_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a be_v require_v to_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n how_o careful_a be_v paul_n that_o the_o incestuous_a person_n shall_v not_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o grief_n 2_o cor._n 2_o and_o here_o be_v the_o more_o wisdom_n because_o satan_n temptation_n be_v subtle_a and_o insinuate_a we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o his_o device_n of_o his_o schism_n what_o false_a circumvention_n and_o appearance_n he_o will_v have_v now_o how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o be_v not_o acquaint_v themselves_o with_o the_o depth_n of_o satan_n that_o be_v no_o better_a comforter_n than_o job_n friend_n be_v christ_n himself_o be_v affect_v with_o all_o our_o temptation_n that_o he_o may_v know_v how_o the_o more_o feel_o to_o pity_v other_o thus_o a_o minister_n that_o have_v himself_o be_v in_o the_o deep_a matter_n of_o god_n that_o have_v himself_o be_v exercise_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o temptation_n he_o can_v only_o tell_v how_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o another_o so_o that_o you_o see_v much_o wisdom_n be_v require_v in_o the_o give_n of_o comfort_n alas_o every_o sick_a man_n every_o die_a man_n look_v we_o shall_v give_v comfort_n and_o they_o will_v have_v a_o word_n of_o comfort_n oh_o but_o what_o have_v thy_o life_n be_v what_o truth_n of_o grace_n be_v there_o in_o thou_o have_v not_o some_o wicked_a man_n cry_v out_o of_o their_o sin_n in_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o public_a judgement_n as_o pharaoh_n do_v therefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n what_o we_o do_v we_o must_v not_o comfort_v who_o god_n will_v not_o have_v comfort_v here_o be_v great_a wisdom_n require_v a_o three_o part_n of_o his_o doctrinal_a key_n be_v to_o rebuke_v and_o reprove_v for_o sin_n now_o reproof_n how_o great_a a_o skill_n be_v it_o wise_o to_o reprove_v to_o have_v zeal_n and_o knowledge_n together_o some_o must_v be_v reprove_v sharp_o t●t_n 1.13_o cutting_o we_o must_v not_o spare_v thus_o john_n call_v some_o a_o generation_n of_o viper_n mat._n 3.7_o and_o our_o saviour_n woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n pharisee_n hypocrite_n many_o time_n repeat_v that_o upbraid_v of_o they_o these_o be_v obstinate_a impenitent_a hypocrite_n mat._n 23.13_o 14_o 15._o and_o little_a blow_n will_v not_o move_v they_o other_o again_o be_v tender_a tractable_a meekness_n will_v do_v more_o than_o austerity_n so_o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n require_v more_o wisdom_n than_o public_a and_o private_a reproof_n man_n can_v so_o hardly_o bear_v they_o genus_fw-la quoddam_fw-la maritirii_fw-la est_fw-la reprehensionem_fw-la patient_fw-la far_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o martyrdom_n to_o bear_v a_o reproof_n patient_o and_o minister_n be_v either_o apt_a to_o be_v too_o awful_a and_o please_v of_o man_n or_o else_o too_o boisterous_a or_o passionate_a so_o that_o the_o shepherd_n of_o irrational_a sheep_n have_v a_o far_o more_o easy_a task_n then_o spiritual_a shepherd_n of_o man_n especial_o in_o superstitious_a custom_n in_o false_a way_n of_o worship_n here_o a_o angel_n wisdom_n will_v scarce_o suffice_v what_o a_o trouble_n be_v that_o to_o the_o church_n in_o her_o infancy_n about_o the_o retain_v or_o leave_v the_o jewish_a ceremony_n the_o question_n and_o difference_n grow_v so_o hot_a that_o it_o have_v almost_o tear_v the_o church_n in_o piece_n the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v call_v about_o this_o many_o still_o judaize_v think_v that_o if_o you_o take_v the_o observation_n of_o time_n and_o outward_a ceremony_n away_o you_o take_v away_o all_o religion_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n and_o rom._n 14._o be_v very_o diligent_a to_o inform_v they_o about_o this_o endeavour_v to_o make_v they_o spiritual_a and_o to_o draw_v up_o their_o heart_n from_o those_o beggarly_a element_n paul_n be_v circumspect_a how_o to_o walk_v in_o this_o slippery_a controversy_n to_o the_o jew_n i_o become_v a_o jew_n 1_o cor._n 9.20_o not_o that_o he_o be_v a_o dissembler_n or_o a_o hypocrite_n or_o humour_v they_o in_o their_o superstitious_a weakness_n but_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o all_o sweet_a affection_n he_o be_v as_o a_o jew_n to_o a_o jew_n as_o weak_a to_o weak_a he_o will_v consider_v they_o as_o if_o he_o be_v in_o their_o case_n yea_o to_o walk_v in_o these_o controversy_n be_v so_o hard_o that_o peter_n give_v great_a occasion_n of_o offence_n yea_o barnabas_n be_v also_o lay_v aside_o for_o he_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o make_v paul_n resist_v he_o to_o the_o face_n with_o this_o dissimulation_n gal_n 1_o now_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o industrious_a to_o root_v out_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o yet_o god_n himself_o have_v once_o command_v how_o much_o rather_o shall_v we_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n without_o any_o command_n of_o god_n or_o warrant_v of_o scripture_n but_o mere_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n as_o for_o the_o other_o kind_n of_o key_n church-government_n the_o wise_a manage_n of_o that_o be_v far_o more_o difficult_a then_o political_a but_o i_o shall_v wave_v that_o as_o not_o so_o proper_a to_o this_o text._n let_v we_o consider_v the_o reason_n why_o this_o doctrinal_a feed_n require_v such_o skill_n and_o prudence_n and_o 1._o first_o because_o divine_a truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v manage_v by_o humane_a worldly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o spiritual_a wisdom_n as_o it_o be_v god_n that_o teach_v people_n to_o profit_n isa_n 48.17_o so_o it_o be_v god_n that_o teach_v the_o minister_n to_o preach_v profitable_o hence_o the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n 1_o cor._n 14._o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n 2_o cor._n 2.5_o as_o some_o expound_v it_o in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o ministry_n we_o can_v think_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a to_o man_n soul_n without_o god_n hence_o as_o of_o christ_n the_o chief_n shepherd_n it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n counsel_n and_o understanding_n shall_v rest_v on_o he_o isa_n 11.2_o so_o it_o will_v be_v happy_a if_o the_o same_o spirit_n proportionable_o do_v rest_n on_o inferior_a shepherd_n i_o have_v catch_v you_o with_o a_o holy_a guile_n 2_o cor._n 12.16_o there_o be_v divine_a stratagem_n to_o win_v man_n soul_n and_o if_o aholiab_n and_o bezaliel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n give_v they_o to_o build_v the_o material_a tabernacle_n how_o much_o more_o do_v other_o need_v it_o to_o edify_v this_o spiritual_a one_o exod._n 36.1_o see_v then_o the_o manage_n of_o holy_a truth_n be_v not_o have_v by_o humane_a prudence_n but_o by_o wisdom_n from_o above_o we_o must_v be_v scribe_n instruct_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o be_v not_o bear_v but_o make_v preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o god_n no_o marvel_n if_o this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o work_n 2._o second_o therefore_o be_v wisdom_n necessary_a in_o our_o preach_n of_o divine_a thing_n because_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o these_o precious_a truth_n be_v a_o far_o great_a loss_n than_o any_o earthly_a loss_n it_o be_v pity_n for_o want_v of_o skill_n in_o any_o calling_n to_o miscarry_v in_o a_o man_n worldly_a affair_n but_o much_o more_o in_o heavenly_a there_o need_v not_o only_a faithfulness_n but_o wisdom_n a_o wise_a and_o faithful_a steward_n it_o be_v that_o make_v five_z multiply_v to_o ten_o if_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o husbandman_n skill_n about_o his_o several_a grain_n tithe_n and_o
wheat_n have_v several_a instrument_n for_o they_o sai_z his_o god_n teach_v he_o isa_n 28.26_o otherwise_o plant_v and_o sow_v and_o all_o cost_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a so_o it_o be_v here_o if_o god_n teach_v we_o not_o direct_v we_o not_o all_o our_o preach_n be_v in_o vain_a and_o our_o sabbath_n day_n be_v lose_v our_o saviour_n will_v not_o have_v any_o piece_n of_o material_a bread_n lose_v but_o ask_v they_o how_o many_o basket_n full_a take_v they_o up_o why_o then_o shall_v any_o thing_n be_v lose_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n 3._o three_o therefore_o be_v wisdom_n necessary_a because_o of_o the_o untowardness_n and_o unteachableness_n of_o people_n which_o have_v sundry_a humour_n sundry_a appetite_n sundry_a affection_n and_o desire_n nazianzen_n be_v much_o affect_v with_o the_o difficulty_n of_o his_o ministry_n in_o this_o respect_n so_o many_o opinion_n so_o many_o different_a affection_n and_o desire_n that_o which_o draw_v on_o some_o will_v drive_v other_o away_o now_o who_o be_v able_a to_o administer_v fit_a and_o convenient_a food_n but_o he_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o heavenly_a prudence_n use_v to_o show_v people_n duty_n how_o much_o they_o be_v to_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o their_o teacher_n that_o they_o may_v be_v direct_v into_o all_o good_a thought_n for_o their_o soul_n good_a thou_o get_v no_o more_o profit_n thou_o can_v not_o understand_v thou_o be_v not_o affect_v oh_o see_v if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o just_a reward_n for_o thy_o want_n of_o prayer_n for_o thy_o guide_n how_o often_o do_v paul_n desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n he_o write_v to_o how_o happy_a be_v it_o when_o the_o ministry_n be_v profitable_a to_o thou_o and_o thou_o be_v profit_v to_o it_o as_o god_n must_v be_v with_o the_o preacher_n so_o he_o must_v be_v with_o the_o hearer_n a_o coal_n of_o fire_n on_o his_o tongue_n to_o purify_v it_o and_o a_o coal_n of_o fire_n on_o your_o ear_n to_o cleanse_v they_o oh_o then_o how_o ungodly_a be_v they_o who_o instead_o of_o pray_v curse_n grudge_n and_o nourish_v malice_n for_o the_o minister_n work_v sake_n mere_o when_o that_o shall_v make_v he_o honourable_a consider_v why_o be_v the_o ministry_n good_a to_o other_o and_o not_o to_o thou_o why_o be_v it_o the_o word_n of_o power_n and_o wisdom_n to_o other_o but_o of_o weakness_n and_o folly_n to_o thou_o see_v if_o all_o this_o come_v not_o by_o thy_o profane_a neglect_n and_o contempt_n of_o earnest_a prayer_n for_o to_o make_v it_o so_o to_o thou_o its_o honey_n to_o other_o but_o gall_n to_o thou_o it_o be_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o other_o but_o death_n to_o thou_o some_o sin_n or_o spiritual_a judgement_n be_v upon_o thou_o and_o therefore_o be_v afraid_a the_o second_o doctrine_n remain_v to_o be_v amplify_v which_o be_v that_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o have_v a_o people_n instruct_v with_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n before_o they_o make_v further_a progress_n in_o religion_n observe_v thus_o the_o apostle_n i_o have_v feed_v you_o with_o milk_n child_n as_o they_o speak_v like_o child_n think_v like_o child_n and_o do_v like_o child_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o another_o case_n 1_o cor._n 13._o so_o they_o have_v meat_n fit_a for_o child_n and_o this_o point_n be_v of_o great_a consequence_n for_o how_o universal_a and_o damnable_a be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o most_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o learned_a the_o alphabet_n of_o religion_n scarce_o have_v hear_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n or_o no_o who_o though_o they_o have_v christ_n often_o in_o their_o mouth_n yet_o know_v not_o what_o christ_n be_v and_o thereupon_o may_v just_o have_v that_o doom_n upon_o they_o which_o our_o saviour_n pass_v upon_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n you_o worship_v you_o know_v not_o what_o joh._n 4.22_o to_o open_v this_o doctrine_n consider_v first_o and_o bewail_v the_o miserable_a atheism_n ignorance_n and_o blindness_n that_o every_o man_n natural_o be_v bear_v in_o about_o religion_n and_o divine_a truth_n they_o hence_o eph_n 5.8_o they_o be_v call_v darkness_n itself_o in_o the_o abstract_n and_o the_o natural_a man_n can_v receive_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o zophar_n compare_v every_o man_n by_o his_o birth_n to_o the_o wild_a ass_n colt_n job_n 11.12_o what_o be_v more_o brutish_a than_o that_o now_o there_o be_v thousand_o of_o people_n and_o those_o live_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v out_o of_o this_o brutish_a ignorance_n man_n that_o never_o feel_v this_o sun_n or_o daystar_n of_o the_o gospel_n arise_v in_o their_o heart_n thus_o as_o god_n promise_v knowledge_n shall_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o water_n do_v the_o sea_n isa_n 11.9_o darkness_n cover_v our_o congregation_n as_o it_o do_v the_o chaos_n at_o first_o second_o as_o people_n be_v thus_o natural_o ignorant_a of_o divine_a truth_n so_o also_o their_o wilful_a slothfulness_n about_o they_o be_v much_o more_o damnable_a he_o that_o do_v not_o know_v his_o master_n will_v shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n but_o he_o that_o shut_v his_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v not_o know_v he_o that_o bid_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o most_o high_a depart_v from_o he_o he_o shall_v be_v beat_v with_o more_o stripe_n oh_o then_o why_o be_v it_o that_o thou_o be_v such_o a_o blind_a bat_n or_o owl_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n thou_o can_v not_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o get_v knowledge_n no_o how_o great_a be_v the_o help_n and_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v in_o these_o day_n theodoret_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o his_o day_n the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n maid_n old_a woman_n handycraft_n man_n labourer_n these_o can_v all_o tell_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o there_o be_v few_o among_o we_o who_o can_v rise_v up_o to_o that_o duty_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o hope_n yet_o the_o scripture_n require_v this_o of_o all_o 1_o pet._n 3.15_o why_o then_o do_v thou_o say_v i_o must_v know_v how_o to_o work_v how_o to_o plough_v to_o sow_v to_o maintain_v my_o natural_a life_n and_o not_o also_o be_v as_o diligent_a about_o thy_o supernatural_a three_o because_o natural_o we_o be_v thus_o like_o a_o wilderness_n full_a of_o briar_n therefore_o god_n have_v strict_o command_v this_o duty_n of_o instruct_v and_o inform_v those_o that_o be_v rude_a and_o ignorant_a in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o this_o duty_n be_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o minister_n but_o the_o scripture_n command_v it_o indispensable_o upon_o parent_n and_o governor_n thus_o in_o deut._n 6.7_o they_o be_v command_v to_o wh●t_v the_o law_n upon_o their_o family_n and_o to_o write_v it_o upon_o the_o post_n and_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o daily_o thus_o joshua_n and_o abraham_n they_o make_v their_o family_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n which_o can_v be_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n paul_n command_v parent_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n eph._n 6.5_o and_o solomon_n proverb_n be_v full_a of_o these_o exhortation_n for_o certain_o if_o the_o scripture_n say_v jer._n 9_o 23._o let_v not_o the_o rich_a man_n boast_v in_o his_o riches_n nor_o the_o great_a man_n in_o his_o honour_n but_o in_o that_o he_o know_v god_n then_o the_o endeavour_n of_o parent_n to_o provide_v wealth_n riches_n land_n or_o a_o great_a portion_n be_v nothing_o so_o acceptable_a as_o to_o teach_v they_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n oh_o therefore_o that_o at_o last_o our_o family_n may_v be_v make_v christ_n school_n wherein_o the_o principle_n and_o command_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v frequent_o urge_v oh_o who_o can_v make_v lamentation_n bitter_a enough_o for_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o in_o many_o family_n there_o be_v the_o devil_n school_n people_n may_v learn_v to_o curse_v to_o swear_v to_o become_v bruit_n beast_n but_o to_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n teach_v will_v be_v the_o great_a burden_n in_o the_o world_n well_o consider_v that_o of_o jeremy_n 10.25_o pour_v down_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o family_n that_o call_v not_o on_o thy_o name_n which_o by_o consequence_n at_o least_o reach_v private_a family_n and_o household_n and_o how_o can_v they_o call_v if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o how_o can_v they_o believe_v if_o they_o do_v not_o know_v as_o aristotle_n observe_v that_o family_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o common_a wealth_n and_o so_o they_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a as_o particular_a family_n be_v so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o church_n that_o consist_v of_o particular_a family_n but_o if_o they_o be_v like_o a_o cage_n of_o unclean_a bird_n like_o the_o wilderness_n wherein_o dreadful_a bird_n be_v what_o good_a
envious_a man_n will_v think_v thus_o will_v i_o have_v god_n no_o better_o to_o i_o then_o to_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v i_o be_v willing_a to_o have_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o i_o as_o i_o desire_v to_o other_o this_o may_v change_v he_o it_o be_v relate_v of_o nero_n a_o envious_a cruel_a man_n that_o he_o will_v sometime_o bewail_v there_o be_v none_o of_o those_o terrible_a judgement_n in_o his_o time_n as_o in_o former_a age_n that_o there_o be_v no_o sudden_a earthquake_n no_o violent_a plague_n and_o such_o sore_a demonstration_n of_o god_n wrath_n well_o may_v be_v call_v clay_n and_o blood_n mingle_v together_o 2._o it_o oppose_v that_o admirable_a goodness_n in_o christ_n oh_o come_v with_o admiration_n and_o read_v and_o consider_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o death_n and_o you_o will_v see_v envy_n be_v as_o direct_v contrary_a to_o he_o as_o the_o serpent_n to_o the_o dove_n consider_v what_o he_o be_v and_o yet_o how_o debase_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n phil._n 2._o for_o it_o be_v his_o due_n be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n with_o he_o so_o that_o he_o may_v always_o have_v declare_v that_o infinite_a majesty_n but_o he_o willing_o do_v obscure_v this_o sun_n in_o a_o cloud_n this_o divinity_n in_o a_o vail_n of_o flesh_n and_o when_o he_o do_v not_o take_v the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o man_n even_o than_o he_o do_v act_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o great_a and_o mighty_a and_o honour_a man_n of_o the_o world_n but_o of_o the_o most_o contemptible_a a_o worm_n and_o no_o man_n yea_o see_v how_o good_a to_o we_o to_o those_o that_o hate_v he_o envy_v he_o how_o destitute_a of_o a_o place_n to_o lay_v his_o head_n in_o that_o support_v all_o the_o world_n by_o his_o power_n at_o his_o death_n how_o abuse_v scorn_a reproach_v and_o handle_v in_o the_o most_o ignominious_a and_o scurrilous_a manner_n oh_o admire_v all_o this_o you_o that_o hear_v and_o believe_v have_v there_o be_v any_o gall_n in_o this_o dove_n any_o envy_n in_o christ_n will_v he_o have_v empty_v himself_o thus_o to_o make_v thou_o full_a will_v he_o have_v become_v poor_a to_o make_v thou_o rich_a oh_o than_o if_o envy_n at_o any_o time_n stir_v in_o thy_o heart_n say_v do_v christ_n do_v thus_o be_v he_o of_o this_o temper_n and_o it_o must_v need_v fill_v thou_o with_o confusion_n 3._o the_o grace_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n be_v often_o pray_v for_o and_o that_o by_o christ_n himself_o that_o his_o people_n might_n have_v it_o he_o pray_v for_o nothing_o so_o earnest_o as_o that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o sign_n and_o symptom_n of_o christ_n disciple_n not_o by_o miracle_n not_o by_o prophecy_n but_o by_o love_n shall_v all_o man_n know_v christ_n disciple_n it_o be_v a_o duty_n enjoin_v also_o for_o faith_n have_v the_o preeminence_n in_o the_o upper_a region_n of_o justification_n so_o love_v in_o the_o low_a of_o sanctification_n now_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o love_n be_v to_o have_v idem_fw-la velle_fw-la and_o idem_fw-la nolle_fw-la to_o make_v all_o good_a thing_n and_o all_o bad_a thing_n common_a yea_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o lover_n be_v not_o where_o it_o animate_v so_o much_o as_o where_o it_o love_v love_n seek_v not_o her_o own_o love_n envy_v not_o love_n be_v not_o puff_v up_o 1_o cor._n 13.4_o 5._o oh_o then_o if_o as_o in_o the_o temple_n every_o thing_n be_v cover_v with_o gold_n so_o among_o christian_n every_o word_n and_o action_n shall_v be_v cover_v with_o love_n let_v all_o your_o thing_n be_v do_v with_o charity_n 1_o cor._n 16.14_o then_o what_o a_o damnable_a sin_n be_v envy_n which_o break_v these_o silken_a cord_n when_o these_o hellish_a motion_n of_o envy_n stir_v in_o thou_o cry_v out_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o love_n oh_o say_v this_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n spirit_n this_o be_v not_o a_o gospel_n spirit_n as_o love_n be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n so_o envy_n be_v the_o dissolution_n of_o it_o and_o as_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n hang_v upon_o love_n so_o they_o do_v all_o fall_n to_o the_o ground_n where_o envy_n be_v if_o then_o there_o be_v but_o these_o three_o object_n to_o look_v on_o god_n christ_n and_o charity_n it_o may_v make_v a_o man_n to_o abhor_v to_o take_v this_o toad_n of_o envy_n in_o his_o breast_n but_o second_o there_o be_v still_o further_a abomination_n in_o this_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v the_o very_a lively_a image_n of_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o like_o the_o devil_n as_o a_o envious_a man_n with_o his_o horn_n to_o push_v at_o every_o one_o and_o his_o cleave_a foot_n to_o make_v division_n and_o wrangling_n this_o you_o hear_v this_o wisdom_n viz._n whereby_o man_n make_v strife_n and_o envy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v devilish_a jam._n 3.15_o oh_o then_o what_o accord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n why_o be_v not_o thou_o ashamed_a to_o look_v god_n or_o good_a man_n in_o the_o face_n that_o have_v this_o devilish_a temper_n in_o thou_o as_o the_o bafilisk_n do_v so_o hate_v man_n that_o they_o say_v he_o will_v take_v the_o very_a picture_n of_o he_o if_o he_o can_v thus_o the_o envy_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v so_o great_a against_o god_n that_o because_o he_o can_v vent_v himself_o upon_o god_n therefore_o he_o do_v upon_o man_n make_v after_o god_n image_n and_o although_o it_o be_v no_o profit_n to_o he_o yea_o a_o increase_n of_o his_o torment_n to_o tempt_v man_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o damn_v he_o yet_o he_o delight_v to_o do_v it_o other_o sin_n of_o drunkeness_n and_o uncleanness_n turn_v man_n into_o beast_n but_o this_o of_o envy_n do_v into_o devil_n insomuch_o that_o a_o envious_a man_n in_o the_o constant_a full_a power_n of_o it_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o motion_n and_o temptation_n be_v far_o off_o from_o godliness_n than_o a_o beastly_a profane_a man_n three_o this_o sin_n of_o envy_n be_v a_o mother-sinne_n a_o fountaine-sinne_n there_o be_v no_o wickedness_n in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o sin_n will_v conceive_v it_o and_o bring_v it_o forth_o through_o envy_n they_o stone_v paul_n through_o envy_n they_o murder_v christ_n all_o the_o persecutor_n of_o christian_n do_v burn_v with_o envy_n themselves_o before_o they_o burn_v the_o martyr_n at_o the_o stake_n hence_o jam._n 4.5_o the_o apostle_n allege_v that_o place_n the_o spirit_n within_o we_o lust_v to_o envy_v aim_v at_o that_o gen._n 6.5_o the_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v only_o evil_a and_o that_o continual_o now_o he_o name_v not_o the_o general_n but_o particularize_v in_o envy_n as_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_n cause_n of_o many_o sin_n for_o where_o envy_v and_o strife_n be_v there_o be_v confusion_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n jam_fw-la 3_o 16._o nay_o not_o only_o personal_a private_a evil_n be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o this_o but_o all_o public_a misery_n common_o begin_v from_o this_o spark_n of_o envy_n a_o commonwealth_n be_v make_v a_o field_n of_o blood_n through_o the_o envy_n of_o ambitious_a man_n the_o church_n be_v cut_v inpeices_o like_o the_o levite_n wife_n through_o envy_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n insomuch_o that_o we_o may_v say_v all_o kingdom_n and_o church_n in_o some_o respect_n have_v die_v of_o this_o disease_n this_o have_v cut_v all_o the_o nerve_n whereby_o any_o society_n be_v compact_v together_o oh_o therefore_o pray_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v out_o this_o incendiary_n and_o boutefeu_n from_o all_o church_n and_o state_n the_o devil_n be_v call_v the_o enemy_n mat._n 13.15_o and_o therefore_o the_o envious_a one_o that_o come_v and_o sow_v tare_n so_o that_o all_o the_o tare_n of_o discord_n dissension_n and_o different_a opinion_n be_v sow_v by_o the_o envious_a one_o that_o grudge_v at_o our_o peace_n and_o unity_n four_o this_o sin_n be_v a_o just_a torment_n to_o he_o that_o commit_v it_o when_o a_o sin_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o a_o punishment_n it_o be_v the_o more_o deadly_a sin_n now_o this_o of_o envy_n it_o be_v a_o very_a gibbett_n a_o very_a rack_n to_o he_o that_o be_v move_v with_o it_o he_o be_v like_o one_o possess_v with_o the_o devil_n that_o form_v that_o be_v throw_v into_o fire_n and_o water_n his_o heart_n be_v a_o very_a hell_n he_o have_v a_o torture_a within_o he_o as_o if_o so_o many_o devil_n be_v pull_v of_o he_o the_o heathen_a observe_v it_o say_v that_o the_o great_a tyrant_n that_o ever_o be_v never_o find_v out_o a_o great_a torment_n and_o certain_o if_o the_o motion_n and_o stir_n of_o envy_n in_o the_o godly_a be_v like_o so_o many_o scorpion_n sting_n in_o they_o what_o be_v they_o to_o wicked_a man_n where_o envy_n
sinful_a effect_n first_o of_o strive_v about_o worldly_a thing_n be_v discover_v thing_n 1._o in_o passionate_a and_o rail_a speech_n let_v all_o clamour_n and_o evil_a speak_n be_v lay_v aside_o ephes_n 4.31_o mat._n 5.22_o whosoever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n call_v he_o fool_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o hell_n fire_n little_o do_v you_o think_v of_o this_o who_o mouth_n be_v as_o loathsome_a as_o open_a sepulcher_n oh_o the_o name_n and_o foul_a language_n that_o that_o mad_a rage_n make_v thou_o cast_v upon_o other_o whereas_o the_o angel_n do_v not_o give_v the_o devil_n rail_v accusation_n those_o foul_a mouth_n they_o argue_v a_o foul_a heart_n that_o black_a tongue_n of_o thou_o will_v at_o last_o be_v punish_v with_o black_a darkness_n in_o hell_n without_o repentance_n 2._o it_o be_v see_v in_o backbiting_a slander_v invent_v of_o lie_n against_o other_o whispering_z and_o secret_o reproach_v of_o other_o where_o they_o be_v not_o present_a to_o justify_v themselves_o these_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v name_v among_o christian_n but_o now_o man_n be_v not_o only_a wolf_n but_o devil_n to_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d false_o slander_v and_o traduce_v other_o to_o be_v a_o backbiter_n be_v reckon_v up_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o great_a sin_n the_o heathen_n be_v guilty_a of_o rom._n 1._o and_o psal_n 15.3_o be_v make_v the_o character_n of_o one_o who_o shall_v no●_n ascend_v unto_o god_n holy_a hill_n thou_o have_v a_o devil_n in_o thy_o tongue_n and_o the_o other_o have_v in_o his_o ear_n to_o who_o thou_o spreade_v these_o slander_n thus_o christ_n himself_o how_o be_v he_o slander_v and_o paul_n whereas_o the_o dog_n with_o their_o tongue_n do_v lick_v lazarus_n sore_n whole_a thou_o do_v with_o thy_o tongue_n make_v the_o whole_a place_n sore_o but_o consider_v that_o psalm_n of_o doeg_n a_o small_a mischievous_a slanderer_n what_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o thou_o o_o thou_o lie_a tongue_n coal_n of_o fire_n psal_n 120_o 5_o fire_n be_v thy_o sin_n and_o fire_n will_v be_v thy_o punishment_n 3._o a_o delight_n to_o go_v to_o law_n and_o to_o implead_v other_o at_o the_o court_n of_o judicature_n the_o corinthian_n strife_n do_v break_v out_o in_o this_o manner_n 1_o cor._n 6._o they_o go_v to_o law_n with_o one_o another_o why_o do_v you_o not_o rather_o suffer_v wrong_a say_v he_o now_o it_o be_v true_a the_o apostle_n do_v not_o there_o prohibit_v all_o kind_n of_o go_v to_o law_n for_o our_o own_o but_o the_o readiness_n of_o heart_n thereunto_o and_o the_o scandal_n of_o go_v before_o heathen_n and_o their_o want_n of_o preparation_n of_o heart_n to_o suffer_v wrong_a rather_o than_o to_o go_v to_o that_o extremity_n they_o do_v not_o try_v all_o other_o way_n of_o reconceliation_n first_o and_o be_v not_o brawl_v and_o squabble_n the_o very_a trade_n the_o meat_n and_o drink_n of_o many_o quarrel_a people_n they_o will_v go_v to_o law_n present_o indeed_o the_o prophet_n say_v to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o testimony_n but_o that_o law_n will_v quick_o moderate_v this_o thou_o will_v go_v to_o law_n whatsoever_o it_o cost_v thou_o what_o if_o it_o cost_v thou_o thy_o soul_n thy_o salvation_n as_o it_o may_v do_v by_o thy_o anger_n malice_n revenge_n and_o impatience_n therein_o last_o this_o civil_a or_o uncivil_a contention_n rather_o be_v see_v in_o the_o procure_n of_o all_o that_o hurt_n and_o mischief_n to_o other_o we_o can_v either_o in_o name_n or_o estate_n so_o that_o whereas_o the_o command_n be_v to_o procure_v all_o good_a thou_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v all_o mischief_n to_o thy_o neighbour_n we_o may_v think_v these_o thing_n need_v to_o be_v preach_v only_o to_o jew_n and_o turk_n to_o cannibal_n or_o such_o savage_a man_n but_o even_o christian_n be_v turn_v such_o horse_n and_o mule_n that_o they_o need_v this_o bit_n to_o be_v put_v in_o their_o mouth_n so_o that_o you_o see_v this_o strife_n be_v in_o tongue_n and_o hand_n and_o if_o the_o tongue_n have_v a_o world_n of_o evil_n how_o much_o evil_a than_o be_v there_o when_o tongue_n and_o hand_n and_o heart_n be_v all_o full_a matter_n as_o for_o strive_v in_o religious_a matter_n that_o be_v see_v two_o way_n 1._o when_o man_n be_v give_v to_o cavil_n and_o contradict_v the_o truth_n though_o never_o so_o evident_o discover_v especial_o because_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o it_o because_o it_o convince_v and_o arraign_v thy_o lust_n great_o condemn_v they_o thus_o the_o pharisee_n be_v froward_o bend_v to_o oppose_v christ_n insomuch_o that_o when_o they_o be_v silence_v and_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v they_o do_v as_o the_o devil_n to_o he_o depart_v for_o a_o season_n and_o afterward_o come_v to_o tempt_v he_o again_o take_v heed_n of_o such_o a_o froward_a disposition_n it_o be_v far_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n sheep_n which_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o follow_v he_o 2._o when_o man_n dote_v about_o question_n and_o dispute_n that_o have_v no_o profit_n or_o if_o profit_n yet_o attend_v not_o to_o they_o in_o their_o place_n the_o apostle_n condemn_v this_o dote_a and_o strive_v about_o word_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n because_o they_o profit_v not_o tit._n 3.9_o a_o man_n with_o needless_a dispute_n be_v like_o a_o field_n that_o bear_v nothing_o but_o briar_n and_o thorn_n there_o come_v a_o man_n to_o ask_v christ_n whether_o many_o shall_v be_v save_v our_o saviour_n do_v not_o answer_v the_o question_n direct_o but_o bid_v he_o strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n luke_n 13.23_o thereby_o rebuke_v his_o curiosity_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v true_o observe_v and_o complain_v that_o man_n seldom_o come_v from_o religious_a dispute_n more_o crucify_v and_o more_o heavenly_a sin_n i_o intend_v to_o spend_v but_o one_o sermon_n on_o this_o subject_a and_o therefore_o i_o must_v heap_v many_o thing_n together_o i_o come_v to_o the_o aggravation_n of_o this_o sin_n of_o contention_n 1._o this_o strive_a temper_n be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o many_o command_n that_o vehement_o press_v love_n brotherly_a kindness_n peaceablenesse_n as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o have_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n rom._n 12.18_o be_v affable_a be_v courteous_a 1_o pet._n 3.8_o thus_o you_o see_v as_o christ_n himself_o do_v not_o strive_v or_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n in_o the_o street_n but_o live_v meek_o peaceable_o so_o ought_v we_o 2._o these_o strife_n and_o quarrelling_n make_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o religion_n in_o vain_a god_n hear_v no_o prayer_n from_o that_o man_n who_o be_v in_o anger_n and_o malice_n with_o other_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n as_o we_o forgive_v other_o yea_o if_o a_o man_n have_v bring_v his_o gift_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o remember_v such_o a_o man_n have_v aught_o against_o he_o he_o must_v leave_v that_o and_o be_v reconcile_v mat._n 5.24_o oh_o how_o can_v contention_n and_o quarrel_n be_v thus_o among_o you_o if_o this_o be_v think_v on_o 3._o the_o relation_n we_o be_v in_o command_v peace_n and_o unity_n there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o christ_n one_o spirit_n one_o baptism_n eph._n 4.5_o why_o fall_v you_o out_o see_v you_o be_v brethren_n so_o that_o christianity_n be_v reproach_v when_o you_o seek_v to_o devour_v one_o another_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n the_o faith_n of_o christ_n never_o have_v any_o power_n over_o thou_o as_o for_o the_o good_a contention_n i_o mention_v that_o be_v when_o man_n strive_v and_o contend_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n for_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n when_o he_o be_v zealous_a to_o reprove_v and_o punish_v sin_n there_o be_v many_o man_n that_o call_v this_o contention_n and_o this_o they_o condemn_v for_o turbulence_n as_o ahab_n call_v elijah_n the_o troubler_n of_o israel_n because_o he_o rebuke_v he_o and_o jezabel_n for_o their_o cruelty_n and_o injustice_n and_o thus_o jeremiah_n you_o hear_v be_v account_v a_o man_n of_o strife_n that_o set_v all_o together_o by_o the_o ear_n now_o this_o strive_v for_o god_n against_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o humour_n of_o man_n can_v be_v omit_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n and_o if_o the_o suppress_n of_o sin_n in_o a_o orderly_a way_n make_v any_o strife_n it_o be_v thy_o fault_n not_o he_o that_o be_v zealous_a christ_n himself_o come_v to_o set_v father_n against_o son_n and_o a_o man_n enemy_n in_o his_o own_o house_n against_o he_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o of_o their_o corruption_n and_o further_o this_o strive_v and_o trouble_n will_v work_v a_o good_a effect_n the_o angel_n that_o come_v down_o with_o heal_v move_v and_o trouble_v the_o water_n but_o that_o be_v for_o good_a so_o the_o physician_n he_o stir_v the_o humour_n he_o put_v into_o great_a pain_n and_o sickness_n for_o a_o while_n
we_o urge_v commandment_n of_o man_n if_o we_o come_v in_o our_o own_o name_n and_o not_o in_o god_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n command_v not_o that_o which_o we_o command_v than_o it_o may_v be_v neglect_v but_o when_o we_o bring_v you_o clear_a scripture_n and_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n then_o how_o great_a be_v your_o disobedience_n consider_v that_o heb._n 12.25_o the_o apostle_n aggravate_v the_o sin_n of_o those_o that_o refuse_v christ_n now_o speak_v from_o heaven_n above_o those_o that_o refuse_v moses_n you_o may_v say_v who_o refuse_v christ_n speak_v from_o heaven_n even_o such_o as_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n deliver_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n unto_o they_o how_o often_o have_v thou_o hear_v go_v away_o and_o sin_n no_o more_o curse_v no_o more_o swear_v no_o more_o but_o yet_o thou_o have_v not_o submit_v to_o this_o 4._o all_o this_o hear_n love_n and_o obedience_n must_v be_v to_o they_o for_o the_o work_v sake_n this_o the_o apostle_n urge_v and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n in_o that_o have_v they_o in_o all_o respect_n for_o their_o work_n sake_n 1_o thes_n 5_o 13._o for_o many_o may_v carry_v it_o fair_a and_o respect_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o other_o end_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o work_n sake_n now_o their_o work_n do_v main_o consist_v in_o instruction_n and_o reproof_n and_o this_o be_v very_o distasteful_a and_o thankless_a to_o profane_v and_o wicked_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o man_n desire_v so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v please_v in_o their_o sin_n that_o we_o shall_v heal_v their_o wound_n slight_o say_v peace_n when_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n now_o if_o we_o dare_v not_o do_v these_o thing_n but_o discharge_v our_o work_n faithful_o we_o be_v have_v in_o no_o respect_n and_o that_o for_o our_o very_a work_n sake_n so_o that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n inform_v reprove_v and_o powerful_o terrify_v for_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v by_o you_o 5._o you_o ought_v to_o show_v your_o spiritual_a respect_n and_o entertainment_n to_o the_o ministry_n in_o avoid_v all_o those_o evil_a and_o wicked_a way_n which_o may_v grieve_v and_o make_v sad_a the_o heart_n of_o godly_a minister_n when_o jeremiah_n see_v his_o people_n walk_v so_o disobedient_o he_o say_v his_o soul_n shall_v mourn_v in_o secret_a for_o they_o jer._n 13.17_o do_v not_o christ_n weep_v over_o jerusalem_n because_o she_o refuse_v the_o prophet_n that_o be_v send_v to_o she_o and_o paul_n press_v beleiver_n to_o unity_n and_o godliness_n he_o use_v this_o argument_n fulfil_v you_o my_o joy_n phil._n 2.2_o and_o again_o we_o live_v if_o you_o stand_v fast_o 1_o thes_n 3.8_o so_o that_o all_o the_o impiety_n and_o error_n that_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v run_v into_o be_v like_o thorn_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o godly_a minister_n this_o will_v make_v they_o give_v their_o account_n with_o grief_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 13_o 17._o oh_o that_o these_o wicked_a action_n which_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o grieve_v the_o heart_n of_o godly_a man_n and_o godly_a minister_n shall_v not_o also_o grieve_v thou_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v when_o this_o respect_n may_v degenerate_v into_o sinful_a admiration_n and_o admiration_n first_o when_o we_o set_v up_o the_o gift_n and_o person_n of_o man_n so_o as_o to_o neglect_v christ_n work_v in_o and_o by_o they_o if_o it_o be_v so_o great_a a_o sin_n in_o temporal_a and_o outward_a thing_n to_o take_v of_o the_o glory_n due_a to_o god_n and_o attribute_v it_o to_o instrument_n how_o much_o more_o be_v this_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n therefore_o observe_v the_o apostle_n he_o to_o cure_v this_o disease_n among_o they_o take_v they_o off_o from_o instrument_n and_o bid_v they_o look_v up_o to_o god_n what_o be_v paul_n and_o what_o be_v apollo_n say_v he_o but_o instrument_n by_o which_o you_o believe_v and_o god_n he_o only_o give_v the_o increase_n though_o other_o may_v plant_v and_o water_n and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n say_v some_o why_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o first_o epistle_n he_o do_v so_o often_o name_n jesus_n christ_n to_o take_v they_o off_o from_o instrument_n and_o to_o look_v more_o to_o he_o not_o that_o the_o instrument_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v but_o god_n the_o principal_a agent_n be_v to_o be_v own_v and_o honour_v rest_v not_o then_o upon_o excellent_a part_n and_o powerful_a preach_n for_o its_o god_n that_o work_v by_o these_o second_o then_o man_n sinful_o admire_v when_o they_o set_v up_o the_o gift_n and_o ability_n of_o one_o to_o the_o contempt_n of_o other_o no_o doubt_n but_o god_n give_v variety_n of_o gift_n and_o some_o be_v more_o eminent_a than_o other_o yet_o none_o be_v so_o to_o prefer_v the_o excellent_a as_o to_o contemn_v and_o discourage_v the_o weak_a what_o the_o apostle_n speak_v about_o the_o several_a member_n of_o the_o church_n some_o be_v more_o excellent_a and_o honourable_a than_o other_o yet_o the_o mean_a be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v be_v also_o to_o be_v do_v about_o the_o several_a gift_n and_o part_n of_o minister_n three_o then_o man_n sinful_o admire_v when_o their_o fail_n and_o error_n they_o will_v follow_v and_o defend_v if_o these_o corinthian_n that_o be_v for_o peter_n shall_v have_v be_v lead_v aside_o as_o he_o do_v many_o to_o circumcision_n this_o be_v their_o infirmity_n in_o primitive_a time_n origen_n a_o famous_a and_o eminent_a man_n prove_v a_o great_a temptation_n to_o the_o church_n for_o man_n have_v rather_o err_v with_o he_o then_o think_v the_o truth_n with_o other_o thus_o among_o the_o sadducee_n and_o the_o pharisee_n whatsoever_o the_o grandee_n of_o their_o sect_n teach_v they_o though_o it_o be_v that_o the_o left_a hand_n be_v the_o right_n yet_o they_o think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o but_o of_o this_o more_o hereafter_o let_v we_o make_v use_v first_o of_o exhortation_n to_o receive_v the_o ministry_n of_o god_n with_o that_o spiritual_a respect_n as_o you_o ought_v to_o do_v the_o best_a praise_n and_o love_v you_o can_v have_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n in_o their_o work_n be_v to_o turn_v all_o that_o be_v preach_v into_o practice_n there_o be_v no_o sin_n for_o which_o god_n will_v soon_o be_v avenge_v than_o this_o contempt_n of_o the_o ministry_n what_o be_v a_o great_a contempt_n then_o to_o be_v often_o invite_v often_o exhort_v to_o forsake_v thy_o sin_n yet_o to_o retain_v they_o still_o you_o do_v not_o despise_v or_o reject_v man_n but_o god_n himself_o god_n do_v for_o many_o year_n bear_v with_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v unwilling_a to_o give_v she_o up_o to_o total_a destruction_n till_o his_o prophet_n be_v slight_v and_o abuse_v then_o they_o that_o will_v not_o have_v ge_v rule_n over_o they_o have_v the_o great_a tyrant_n and_o proud_a enemy_n to_o trample_v over_o they_o now_o there_o be_v divers_a motive_n to_o give_v this_o spiritual_a entertainment_n to_o the_o ministry_n for_o 1._o they_o be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o god_n they_o come_v from_o god_n ministry_n and_o declare_v his_o will_n do_v not_o thou_o then_o harden_v thyself_o presumptuous_o against_o this_o way_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o ministry_n will_v judge_v thou_o at_o that_o great_a day_n you_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o all_o the_o pain_n and_o labour_n that_o have_v be_v take_v to_o reform_v thou_o 3._o if_o you_o receive_v the_o word_n you_o receive_v not_o that_o alone_o but_o all_o blessing_n with_o it_o when_o obed-edom_n have_v the_o ark_n than_o god_n blessing_n do_v manifest_o accompany_v it_o use_v 2._o of_o instruction_n why_o the_o devil_n in_o all_o age_n have_v still_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o faithful_a ministry_n it_o be_v because_o that_o be_v the_o great_a engine_n to_o destroy_v his_o kingdom_n as_o also_o this_o may_v inform_v we_o who_o be_v his_o instrument_n in_o this_o matter_n even_o such_o as_o feel_v not_o the_o benefit_n of_o these_o ordinance_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o make_v a_o man_n to_o love_v the_o ministry_n upon_o good_a ground_n but_o the_o spiritual_a good_a they_o receive_v by_o it_o when_o these_o corinthian_n slight_v paul_n and_o doubt_v about_o his_o call_n he_o prove_v it_o by_o experimental_a work_n on_o they_o conclude_v it_o therefore_o that_o all_o those_o man_n who_o cavil_v and_o oppose_v the_o ministry_n they_o be_v such_o who_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v to_o get_v any_o spiritual_a good_a by_o that_o office_n for_o while_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o another_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n be_v you_o not_o carnal_a these_o word_n you_o have_v hear_v prohibit_v a_o sinful_a admiration_n of_o any_o man_n person_n or_o gift_n though_o he_o be_v a_o
peter_n commend_v believer_n that_o they_o do_v give_v heed_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o a_o light_n shine_v in_o dark_a place_n 2_o pet._n 1.19_o so_o then_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v one_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o all_o our_o faith_n and_o godliness_n it_o be_v the_o rule_n god_n have_v tie_v we_o to_o we_o be_v not_o to_o receive_v angel_n from_o heaven_n galat._n 1.8_o much_o less_o man_n on_o earth_n against_o scripture_n a_o second_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o ministry_n appoint_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n it_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o reckon_v up_o the_o place_n that_o speak_v of_o its_o usefulness_n and_o necessity_n what_o be_v paul_n or_o apollo_n but_o instrument_n or_o minister_n by_o which_o you_o believe_v 1_o cor._n 3.5_o though_o they_o be_v not_o principal_n yet_o they_o be_v instrument_n ephes_n 4.11_o god_n have_v give_v gift_n to_o man_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n that_o they_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n yea_o they_o be_v call_v father_n because_o they_o beget_v man_n to_o christ_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o save_v man_n and_o convert_v man_n because_o they_o be_v instrument_n yea_o they_o be_v call_v worker_n with_o god_n 2_o cor._n 6.1_o what_o a_o great_a expression_n be_v this_o so_o that_o you_o see_v the_o ministry_n be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n last_o there_o be_v the_o sacrament_n when_o due_o administer_v and_o receive_v there_o be_v many_o great_a expression_n give_v to_o they_o bread_n and_o wine_n 1_o cor._n 10._o be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n baptism_n be_v the_o put_v on_o of_o christ_n now_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o great_a error_n that_o ever_o be_v by_o put_v too_o much_o in_o instrument_n have_v be_v about_o the_o sacrament_n in_o popery_n the_o scripture_n be_v far_o enough_o from_o be_v set_v up_o too_o much_o they_o disparage_v that_o make_v it_o insufficient_a and_o imperfect_a but_o then_o for_o the_o sacrament_n they_o maintain_v the_o very_a act_n of_o receive_v be_v to_o work_v grace_n and_o in_o this_o popery_n many_o people_n do_v still_o remain_v not_o consider_v that_o unworthy_a receiver_n receive_v their_o damnation_n as_o well_o as_o the_o worthy_a christ_n and_o his_o benefit_n but_o when_o the_o devil_n can_v destroy_v the_o power_n of_o godliness_n by_o tempt_a man_n to_o put_v too_o much_o confidence_n in_o instrumental_n than_o he_o bring_v about_o atheism_n and_o irreligion_n by_o a_o total_a reject_v of_o they_o oppose_v they_o to_o christ_n therefore_o second_o there_o have_v be_v enthusiast_n or_o illuminatist_n who_o have_v think_v themselves_o spiritual_a only_o that_o have_v either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n reject_v these_o instrumental_n a_o dangerous_a delusion_n it_o be_v and_o have_v many_o time_n surprise_v those_o who_o have_v be_v hopeful_a in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n and_o have_v many_o part_n and_o religious_a ability_n but_o want_v a_o sure_a and_o sound_a foundation_n they_o live_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n god_n have_v give_v they_o up_o to_o such_o delusion_n neither_o have_v they_o stay_v in_o deny_v the_o ministry_n and_o ordinance_n but_o some_o of_o they_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o neglect_v the_o scripture_n also_o call_v it_o the_o dead_a letter_n and_o say_v a_o godly_a man_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o bible_n thus_o subtle_a be_v the_o devil_n that_o when_o he_o can_v destroy_v by_o open_a profaneness_n he_o make_v they_o decline_v too_o much_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n lift_v they_o up_o to_o some_o pinnacle_n and_o then_o afterward_o throw_v they_o down_o by_o some_o dangerous_a temptation_n but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n so_o to_o advance_v christ_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o oppose_v his_o institute_v mean_n and_o ordinance_n first_o because_o it_o be_v a_o presumptuous_a tempt_a of_o god_n for_o as_o in_o providential_a thing_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v argue_v thus_o man_n live_v not_o by_o bread_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n mouth_n clothes_n and_o food_n be_v nothing_o if_o god_n do_v not_o give_v the_o blessing_n if_o a_o man_n upon_o this_o argument_n shall_v neglect_v all_o secondary_a help_n will_v it_o not_o be_v a_o presumptuous_a tempt_a of_o god_n you_o know_v how_o angry_a god_n be_v with_o ahaz_n the_o prophet_n promise_v unexpected_a deliverance_n to_o israel_n and_o proffer_v a_o sign_n to_o confirm_v this_o no_o say_v ahaz_n i_o will_v not_o tempt_v god_n i_o will_v ask_v no_o sign_n isai_n 7.12_o you_o may_v think_v this_o have_v be_v great_a faith_n but_o it_o be_v great_a presumption_n he_o tempt_v god_n while_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o thou_o may_v think_v this_o be_v high_a and_o raise_a godliness_n to_o have_v christ_n only_o and_o the_o spirit_n only_o thy_o teacher_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v this_o to_o exclude_v his_o institute_v mean_n thou_o do_v tempt_v god_n second_o it_o be_v great_a pride_n of_o heart_n and_o disobedient_a unthankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o that_o against_o his_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n it_o be_v god_n great_a goodness_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v man_n of_o the_o same_o mould_n with_o we_o to_o deliver_v his_o embassage_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n when_o the_o law_n be_v give_v can_v not_o bear_v the_o expression_n of_o god_n majesty_n and_o if_o god_n have_v appear_v at_o any_o time_n they_o think_v they_o shall_v die_v present_o now_o god_n know_v our_o frailty_n and_o weakness_n do_v appoint_v man_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o passion_n with_o we_o and_o for_o thou_o to_o neglect_v this_o be_v to_o be_v horrible_o unthankful_a and_o then_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v much_o magnify_v by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o in_o the_o account_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n to_o save_v they_o and_o thereupon_o he_o amplifi_v god_n wisdom_n that_o choose_v vile_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n to_o confound_v the_o mighty_a and_o wise_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 1._o take_v heed_n then_o of_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n it_o do_v arise_v from_o that_o carnal_a pride_n that_o can_v condescend_v to_o the_o seem_a low_a mean_n in_o christ_n way_n three_o and_o i_o will_v name_v no_o more_o other_o matter_n belong_v to_o this_o will_v come_v in_o afterward_o it_o be_v the_o immediate_a further_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n oh_o what_o a_o sad_a thing_n be_v it_o that_o which_o the_o profane_a enemy_n and_o antichristian_a adversary_n do_v former_o endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v to_o wit_n the_o godly_a ministry_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n that_o thou_o shall_v in_o another_o way_n do_v it_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o how_o low_a soever_o it_o be_v with_o thou_o yet_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n often_o and_o that_o be_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n the_o kingdom_n we_o pray_v may_v come_v and_o therefore_o tremble_v and_o again_o tremble_v leave_v the_o devil_n begin_v to_o undo_v thy_o soul_n by_o withdraw_v thou_o from_o the_o ministry_n of_o christ_n alas_o thou_o think_v to_o set_v against_o that_o and_o overthrow_v that_o but_o poor_a man_n thou_o set_v against_o thy_o soul_n and_o overthrowe_v thy_o own_o soul_n do_v not_o then_o entertain_v any_o opinion_n or_o practice_n which_o open_v a_o way_n to_o set_v satan_n up_o in_o his_o throne_n use_v of_o admonition_n to_o you_o who_o have_v knowledge_n and_o part_n and_o a_o repute_n of_o religion_n take_v heed_n of_o satan_n temptation_n in_o this_o kind_n it_o be_v a_o please_a delusion_n he_o have_v seduce_v many_o this_o way_n lay_v therefore_o up_o a_o good_a foundation_n shake_v off_o such_o suggestion_n as_o paul_n do_v the_o viper_n upon_o his_o hand_n walk_v humble_o take_v heed_n of_o pride_n self-conceit_n affect_v to_o be_v some_o extraordinary_a person_n oh_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o satan_n device_n and_o subtlety_n in_o this_o kind_n remember_v if_o thou_o be_v godly_a how_o useful_a profitable_a and_o comfortable_a a_o godly_a ministry_n have_v be_v unto_o thou_o use_v 2._o to_o rebuke_v with_o all_o severity_n those_o atheistical_a profane_a man_n that_o neither_o regard_n christ_n the_o principal_a nor_o the_o minister_n as_o instrument_n they_o be_v neither_o for_o paul_n nor_o apollo_n nor_o for_o christ_n but_o they_o be_v for_o their_o lust_n their_o pleasure_n their_o mammon_n as_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n either_o christ_n teach_n or_o the_o minister_n teach_v they_o make_v no_o matter_n of_o verse_n 5._o who_o then_o be_v paul_n and_o who_o be_v apollo_n these_o word_n be_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v why_o they_o shall_v not_o set_v
affect_a wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n without_o either_o miraculous_a sign_n or_o scientifical_a demonstration_n either_o of_o which_o will_v much_o persuade_v man_n four_o and_o last_o it_o be_v the_o perpetual_a invariable_a mean_n god_n have_v appoint_v to_o the_o world_n end_n when_o the_o ministry_n and_o preach_a shall_v cease_v then_o shall_v all_o this_o world_n with_o the_o thing_n therein_o cease_v thus_o eph._n 4._o it_o be_v there_o say_v to_o continue_v till_o christ_n come_v and_o paul_n direction_n about_o the_o ministry_n must_v be_v keep_v till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o former_a dispensation_n be_v alter_v he_o have_v take_v away_o priest_n and_o levite_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n but_o he_o will_v never_o take_v away_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o sacrament_n and_o these_o must_v abide_v as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o church_n on_o the_o world_n use_v of_o examination_n it_o be_v the_o ministry_n this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a necessary_a appoint_a menan_n for_o faith_n and_o other_o grace_n why_o then_o be_v it_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o to_o thou_o oh_o it_o will_v be_v a_o heavy_a trouble_n to_o thou_o thou_o will_v think_v god_n have_v some_o extraordinary_a jugement_n upon_o thou_o if_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o clothes_n to_o warm_v no_o food_n to_o nourish_v thou_o no_o creature_n be_v that_o to_o thou_o for_o which_o it_o be_v appoint_v but_o behold_v a_o great_a judgement_n than_o this_o no_o ministry_n do_v convert_v thou_o no_o preaehing_n beget_v faith_n or_o repentance_n in_o thou_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n what_o multitude_n be_v convert_v by_o the_o word_n yea_o in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o reformation_n from_o popery_n how_o many_o do_v not_o only_o receive_v the_o truth_n in_o their_o mind_n but_o grace_n in_o their_o heart_n they_o be_v not_o only_o convert_v from_o popery_n and_o superstition_n but_o from_o profaneness_n and_o impiety_n but_o now_o alas_o to_o who_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n make_v know_v certain_o the_o word_n be_v the_o same_o god_n arm_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o ever_o but_o man_n by_o their_o wilful_a ignorance_n by_o their_o unthankfulness_n and_o rebel_a against_o the_o light_n have_v sin_v away_o the_o presence_n and_o power_n of_o god_n from_o the_o ministry_n and_o then_o if_o god_n go_v not_o along_o with_o we_o alas_o what_o can_v we_o do_v oh_o that_o you_o who_o be_v hearer_n will_v deep_o lay_v these_o thing_n to_o heart_n god_n say_v his_o word_n be_v a_o enlighten_v word_n a_o sanctify_a cleanse_a word_n why_o be_v it_o not_o so_o to_o thou_o why_o be_v thou_o no_o more_o reform_v then_o where_o there_o be_v no_o preach_v no_o ministry_n at_o all_o the_o same_o curse_v swear_v the_o same_o lust_n pride_n covetousness_n and_o ignorance_n be_v not_o all_o this_o because_o god_n do_v not_o appear_v in_o his_o own_o ordinance_n oh_o man_n without_o hope_n how_o desperate_a be_v such_o man_n condition_n for_o if_o the_o ministry_n cure_v thou_o not_o what_o will_v cure_v thou_o woe_n be_v to_o thou_o if_o the_o word_n that_o be_v so_o effectual_a and_o operative_a to_o other_o be_v not_o also_o to_o thou_o who_o be_v paul_n and_o who_o be_v apollo_n but_o minister_n by_o who_o you_o believe_v even_o as_o the_o lord_n give_v every_o man_n the_o three_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o be_v discuss_v be_v the_o noble_a effect_n whereof_o the_o ministry_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n viz._n you_o believe_v faith_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a common-place_n in_o divinity_n it_o be_v the_o sanctum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la in_o this_o spiritual_a building_n it_o be_v the_o fat_a in_o that_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n we_o offer_v to_o god_n and_o because_o of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o most_o sublime_a nature_n of_o it_o it_o be_v least_o understand_v by_o the_o natural_a man_n i_o shall_v not_o at_o this_o time_n handle_v all_o the_o main_a particular_n about_o it_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v it_o not_o in_o this_o place_n only_o take_v notice_n that_o in_o stead_n of_o all_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n repent_v reform_v he_o name_v believe_v because_o this_o be_v initial_a and_o introductory_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o word_n faith_n or_o believe_v be_v of_o a_o very_a large_a and_o fruitful_a signification_n but_o it_o be_v impertinent_a at_o this_o time_n to_o trouble_v you_o with_o it_o observe_v faith_n that_o faith_n be_v the_o great_a and_o eminent_a grace_n which_o god_n by_o the_o ministry_n work_v in_o some_o hearer_n thus_o upon_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n preach_v still_o this_o be_v record_v and_o many_o believe_v insomuch_o that_o faith_n be_v say_v to_o come_v by_o hear_v rom._n 10.17_o the_o scripture_n indeed_o sometime_o speak_v of_o faith_n as_o prerequisite_a to_o make_v the_o word_n profitable_a who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n and_o the_o word_n profit_v they_o not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o mix_v with_o faith_n heb._n 4.6_o here_o we_o see_v unbelief_n do_v obstruct_v and_o hinder_v the_o savoury_a effect_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o be_v final_o in_o those_o that_o p●rish_n but_o in_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v god_n in_o his_o due_a time_n will_v by_o the_o word_n preach_v work_v faith_n viz._n enlighten_v their_o mind_n and_o open_v their_o heart_n to_o entertain_v it_o to_o open_v this_o doctrine_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n knowledge_n and_o that_o be_v usual_o say_v to_o consist_v in_o three_o act_n whether_o they_o be_v all_o essential_a or_o some_o only_a i_o shall_v not_o here_o determine_v the_o first_o be_v knowledge_n and_o understanding_n this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v john_n 17.3_o yea_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a and_o powerful_a conviction_n of_o the_o mind_n hence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o substance_n and_o evidence_n of_o thing_n heb._n 11.1_o believe_v in_o the_o soul_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o corporal_a see_v of_o the_o body_n to_o say_v a_o blind_a faith_n be_v as_o great_a a_o contradiction_n as_o to_o say_v a_o dark_a sun_n or_o a_o cold_a fire_n if_o it_o be_v faith_n it_o do_v see_v the_o ground_n of_o its_o belief_n indeed_o faith_n can_v comprehend_v the_o matter_n we_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n be_v like_o the_o dazel_a sun_n to_o our_o bats-eye_n but_o though_o faith_n can_v comprehend_v the_o matter_n believe_v yet_o it_o know_v the_o ground_n why_o it_o do_v believe_v in_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n word_n which_o say_v it_o be_v thus_o and_o thus_o oh_o then_o how_o far_o be_v many_o from_o be_v believer_n for_o ignorance_n cover_v their_o soul_n as_o darkness_n do_v the_o chaos_n at_o the_o first_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o religion_n the_o total_a ignorance_n whereof_o do_v damn_v a_o man_n yet_o be_v like_o a_o veil_n upon_o most_o man_n eye_n oh_o then_o consider_v that_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n be_v the_o necessary_a way_n to_o let_v in_o faith_n or_o rather_o be_v a_o beginning_n and_o part_n of_o it_o if_o thou_o have_v lose_v thy_o eye_n or_o be_v smite_v with_o corporal_a blindness_n how_o much_o will_v it_o affect_v thou_o but_o now_o thou_o have_v unbelief_n and_o spiritual_a blindness_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o break_v thy_o heart_n say_v no_o more_o thou_o believe_v in_o christ_n thou_o believe_v in_o god_n if_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o christ_n and_o god_n be_v though_o ignorant_a people_n be_v full_a of_o their_o devotion_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v without_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n it_o be_v as_o abominable_a as_o a_o sacrifice_n without_o eye_n second_o but_o knowledge_n be_v not_o all_o how_o many_o atheist_n be_v there_o assent_n that_o know_v much_o and_o understand_v the_o point_n of_o religion_n yet_o believe_v not_o therefore_o the_o second_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o assent_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o they_o as_o true_a and_o this_o indeed_o we_o mean_v and_o scripture_n also_o mean_v this_o most_o common_o when_o it_o speak_v of_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v give_v a_o firm_a and_o sure_a assent_n to_o it_o as_o true_a hence_o that_o expression_n faith_n be_v the_o substance_n heb._n 11.1_o that_o be_v by_o faith_n we_o make_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v future_a real_o subsist_v as_o it_o be_v in_o our_o soul_n as_o if_o present_a thus_o faith_n make_v heaven_n and_o hell_n present_a the_o apostle_n excellent_o describe_v it_o they_o behold_v not_o the_o thing_n temporal_a or_o see_v but_o the_o thing_n eternal_a which_o be_v not_o see_v 2_o cor._n 4_o 18._o thus_o moses_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o earnest_a eye_n of_o faith_n fix_v upon_o the_o reward_n and_o that_o be_v a_o act_n
do_v divide_v the_o whole_a ministerial_a employment_n in_o two_o part_n plant_v and_o water_v so_o it_o attribute_v the_o chief_a and_o noble_a of_o all_o to_o god_n without_o who_o the_o other_o ability_n be_v in_o vain_a the_o fat_a in_o the_o offering_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o god_n give_v the_o fat_a to_o we_o in_o spiritual_a service_n the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o all_o be_v express_v in_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v one_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a but_o our_o english_a translatour_n and_o so_o the_o latin_a read_v it_o give_v the_o increase_n the_o metaphor_n be_v easy_a as_o the_o gardener_n set_v his_o herb_n water_n they_o but_o he_o can_v make_v they_o grow_v he_o can_v make_v the_o least_o flower_n that_o be_v though_o he_o have_v never_o so_o much_o skill_n thus_o it_o be_v here_o though_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o seraphical_a affection_n and_o cherubinical_a knowledge_n yet_o they_o can_v make_v the_o word_n to_o prosper_v and_o to_o increase_v in_o the_o hearer_n it_o be_v god_n do_v that_o isa_n 55.10_o isa_n 61.11_o there_o you_o have_v such_o similitude_n so_o that_o this_o latter_a part_n be_v a_o admirable_a direction_n to_o look_v above_o the_o ability_n above_o the_o part_n and_o gift_n of_o man_n we_o think_v oh_o if_o we_o have_v such_o a_o ministry_n all_o will_v be_v well_o whereas_o apollo_n and_o paul_n can_v give_v increase_n gospel_n observe_v that_o its_o god_n only_o who_o can_v and_o will_v give_v increase_n and_o spiritual_a success_n to_o the_o ministerial_a labour_n in_o the_o church_n god_n that_o at_o first_o say_v to_o the_o earth_n which_o have_v no_o more_o natural_a power_n of_o itself_o than_o a_o stick_n or_o piece_n of_o wood_n increase_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n do_v also_o speak_v to_o such_o exhortation_n instruction_n to_o convince_v and_o convert_v when_o there_o be_v no_o inward_a strength_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o howsoever_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v compare_v often_o to_o rain_v that_o fall_v on_o the_o ground_n and_o make_v the_o grass_n to_o grow_v yet_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n the_o rain_n work_v by_o a_o natural_a power_n as_o a_o natural_a cause_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o as_o a_o institute_v and_o appoint_v cause_n by_o he_o do_v it_o work_v natural_o all_o that_o hear_v will_v be_v convert_v every_o sermon_n will_v work_v like_o those_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o bring_v home_o so_o many_o to_o open_v this_o consider_v first_o ministry_n that_o though_o god_n only_o give_v the_o increase_n yet_o it_o be_v only_o in_o and_o through_o the_o ministry_n we_o must_v not_o make_v such_o cavil_n what_o use_n be_v there_o of_o preach_v what_o need_v of_o the_o ministry_n man_n will_v be_v as_o profane_v and_o as_o ungodly_a as_o ever_o till_o god_n change_v the_o heart_n for_o you_o may_v as_o well_o urge_v what_o need_v the_o husbandman_n plough_n or_o sow_v or_o prepare_v the_o ground_n it_o be_v god_n only_o that_o bless_v it_o no_o god_n have_v institute_v mean_n to_o which_o he_o have_v bind_v we_o and_o those_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v paul_n plant_v or_o apollo_n water_v may_v just_o expect_v god_n will_v give_v no_o increase_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n foresee_v that_o great_a evil_n of_o forsake_v the_o assembly_n the_o ordinance_n and_o bid_v they_o take_v heed_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o apostasy_n heb._n 10.25_o 26._o if_o you_o take_v a_o tree_n from_o the_o river_n side_n where_o it_o grow_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o plant_v it_o in_o a_o wilderness_n it_o will_v quick_o wither_v will_n second_o as_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n only_o so_o the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o person_n on_o who_o be_v whole_o at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n the_o lord_n make_v the_o word_n prosperous_a at_o one_o time_n and_o not_o another_o sometime_o it_o come_v like_o fire_n into_o the_o bosom_n it_o burn_v thou_o all_o over_o at_o another_o time_n thou_o find_v no_o operation_n to_o some_o people_n it_o be_v like_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o tree_n in_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n it_o be_v the_o heal_n of_o people_n it_o make_v the_o ignorant_a to_o know_v the_o profane_a to_o become_v holy_a it_o mollifi_v the_o hard_a heart_n it_o turn_v a_o wilderness_n into_o a_o garden_n but_o to_o another_o people_n it_o be_v like_a salt_n that_o have_v lose_v its_o savour_n or_o that_o make_v a_o place_n more_o barren_a it_o make_v no_o relish_n no_o taste_n no_o alteration_n you_o will_v wonder_v a_o people_n shall_v sit_v so_o long_o under_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o be_v no_o more_o colour_v by_o it_o preach_v and_o no_o preach_v be_v all_o one_o to_o he_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v it_o shall_v be_v not_o only_o marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n but_o dreadful_a to_o our_o ear_n to_o some_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v and_o understand_v but_o to_o other_o not_o mat._n 13.11_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v why_o god_n only_o give_v the_o increase_n and_o then_o the_o end_n that_o god_n have_v in_o this_o increase_n first_o god_n only_o can_v give_v the_o increase_n because_o he_o only_o have_v a_o sovereignty_n and_o power_n over_o the_o heart_n other_o may_v speak_v to_o the_o ear_n propound_v argument_n to_o persuade_v but_o to_o change_v the_o heart_n to_o persuade_v the_o heart_n indeed_o that_o god_n only_a can_n who_o make_v the_o heart_n thus_o noah_n pray_v or_o propehsy_v god_n persuade_v shem_n to_o dwell_v in_o the_o tent_n of_o japhet_n god_n persuade_v he_o or_o god_n will_v persuade_v he_o we_o translate_v it_o enlarge_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n all_o argument_n can_v till_o god_n overpower_v his_o heart_n gen._n 9.27_o so_o ezek._n 36.36_o i_o will_v take_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o stone_n and_o give_v a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n no_o potentate_n no_o emperor_n can_v say_v i_o will_v give_v a_o man_n another_o heart_n he_o may_v force_v the_o body_n but_o not_o change_v the_o heart_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n atttribute_v all_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n to_o believe_v to_o repent_v only_o to_o god_n oh_o then_o lift_v up_o your_o heart_n on_o high_a in_o every_o sermon_n look_v up_o to_o those_o hill_n to_o heaven_n from_o whence_o come_v conversion_n when_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n they_o look_v up_o to_o god_n and_o the_o people_n they_o glorify_a god_n they_o be_v convince_v none_o can_v do_v such_o thing_n but_o god_n and_o so_o we_o minister_n be_v to_o look_v up_o to_o god_n and_o you_o people_n that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v second_o god_n only_o can_v give_v the_o increase_n because_o the_o increase_n be_v of_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a consideration_n it_o be_v altogether_o heavenly_a now_o there_o be_v no_o proportion_n between_o humane_a ability_n and_o heavenly_a grace_n there_o be_v no_o disposition_n inter_fw-la ordinem_fw-la naturae_fw-la &_o ordinem_fw-la gratiae_fw-la the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o other_o of_o grace_n all_o that_o the_o most_o able_a minister_n can_v do_v be_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o fruit_n be_v heavenly_a must_v come_v otherwise_o as_o in_o man_n though_o a_o child_n have_v his_o body_n from_o the_o father_n yet_o the_o soul_n come_v immediate_o from_o god_n because_o it_o be_v of_o a_o immaterial_a and_o immortal_a substance_n thus_o also_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v immaterial_a grace_n though_o the_o minister_n may_v prepare_v and_o dispose_v the_o subject_a yet_o the_o work_n of_o they_o be_v only_o from_o god_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o the_o part_n and_o ability_n of_o one_o minister_n may_v be_v objective_o better_a for_o conversion_n and_o more_o likely_a for_o profit_v then_o another_o they_o may_v propound_v strong_a argument_n to_o convince_v the_o conscience_n they_o may_v set_v those_o argument_n home_o with_o great_a life_n and_o vigour_n as_o apollo_n be_v say_v to_o be_v potent_a in_o the_o scripture_n thus_o one_o minister_n may_v exceed_v another_o in_o glory_n as_o one_o star_n do_v another_o yet_o god_n only_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n three_o therefore_o god_n only_o give_v the_o increase_n because_o of_o the_o deep_a pollution_n that_o be_v in_o every_o man_n who_o be_v not_o only_o blind_a and_o deaf_a but_o dead_a now_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v a_o eloquent_a pathetical_a oration_n to_o a_o dead_a man_n david_n that_o do_v with_o so_o much_o affection_n weep_v over_o dead_a absalon_n yet_o can_v not_o bring_v he_o to_o life_n so_o that_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o word_n differ_v from_o all_o the_o humane_a orator_n greek_a and_o latin_n they_o may_v by_o their_o eloquence_n
and_o affection_n persuade_v their_o hearer_n for_o it_o be_v about_o civil_a and_o moral_a matter_n about_o which_o man_n have_v understanding_n natural_o able_a to_o perceive_v and_o will_n natural_o able_a to_o choose_v the_o thing_n persuade_v but_o preach_v be_v about_o those_o thing_n to_o which_o man_n have_v no_o understanding_n to_o believe_v nor_o no_o heart_n to_o receive_v but_o god_n must_v give_v the_o hear_n ear_n and_o the_o see_a eye_n else_o we_o miscarry_v so_o you_o be_v not_o to_o come_v to_o sermon_n as_o to_o humane_a oration_n your_o own_o understanding_n your_o own_o natural_a part_n be_v enemy_n and_o adversary_n to_o good_a and_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n there_o be_v two_o part_n of_o wisdom_n say_v lactantius_n the_o former_a to_o understand_v what_o thing_n be_v false_a 2._o the_o second_o to_o know_v what_o thing_n be_v true_a we_o be_v to_o be_v untaught_a undeceived_a before_o we_o come_v to_o know_v heavenly_a thing_n so_o that_o all_o be_v of_o god_n both_o the_o word_n to_o be_v hear_v and_o the_o ear_n to_o hear_v both_o the_o word_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o heart_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o end_n why_o all_o increase_n must_v be_v of_o god_n only_o and_o that_o be_v to_o preach_v humility_n both_o to_o the_o preacher_n and_o to_o the_o people_n the_o apostle_n carry_v it_o whole_o for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o that_o glori_v may_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n first_o the_o minister_n that_o peter_n who_o have_v so_o many_o thousand_o convert_v by_o his_o sermon_n that_o paul_n who_o be_v so_o exalt_v by_o god_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v lift_v up_o above_o measure_n for_o alas_o what_o have_v they_o do_v it_o be_v god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n it_o have_v be_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o many_o have_v split_v themselves_o that_o they_o have_v have_v follower_n and_o admirer_n the_o manichee_n say_v their_o master_n do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pour_v out_o manna_n the_o donatist_n will_v swear_v by_o the_o head_n of_o donatus_n as_o people_n do_v solemn_o by_o god_n to_o show_v how_o they_o reverence_v he_o now_o that_o man_n though_o great_o exalt_v by_o god_n may_v be_v humble_a he_o have_v reserve_v all_o success_n to_o himself_o it_o be_v not_o thou_o that_o have_v make_v the_o blind_a to_o see_v or_o the_o lame_a to_o go_v it_o be_v god_n that_o teach_v to_o profit_v and_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n joh._n 45._o viz._n convert_v because_o man_n he_o give_v the_o ministry_n and_o outward_a service_n only_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n make_v many_o eminent_a preacher_n as_o he_o do_v some_o eminent_a woman_n go_v barren_a they_o see_v not_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n they_o have_v spend_v themselves_o in_o vain_a they_o go_v childless_a to_o the_o grave_n they_o can_v say_v behold_v i_o and_o the_o child_n who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o again_o second_o it_o teach_v the_o people_n also_o to_o glorify_v god_n not_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o part_n and_o gift_n of_o man_n as_o michal_n say_v now_o god_n will_v bless_v i_o because_o i_o have_v a_o levite_n in_o the_o house_n so_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o say_v now_o we_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n now_o we_o shall_v have_v salvation_n because_o we_o have_v such_o preach_a it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v affect_v with_o and_o admire_v the_o gift_n of_o minister_n they_o may_v ravish_v you_o they_o may_v great_o move_v you_o but_o you_o rest_v on_o these_o mere_o find_v no_o success_n at_o all_o as_o it_o be_v say_v we_o do_v not_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n 2_o cor._n 5.16_o after_o humane_a consideration_n so_o neither_o be_v we_o to_o know_v the_o ministry_n or_o preach_v after_o such_o carnal_a respect_n that_o be_v admirable_a preach_n that_o be_v a_o excellent_a sermon_n which_o god_n make_v spiritual_o to_o prosper_v in_o thy_o soul_n three_o therefore_o god_n only_o give_v the_o success_n that_o so_o we_o may_v seek_v and_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o god_n may_v be_v please_v with_o we_o may_v easy_o provoke_v god_n to_o turn_v bread_n into_o stone_n and_o a_o pleasant_a pool_n into_o a_o wilderness_n increase_n now_o that_o god_n may_v give_v increase_n do_v these_o thing_n first_o bewail_v bypass_a unthankfulness_n and_o unfruitfulness_n o_o lord_n how_o often_o have_v i_o be_v a_o hearer_n how_o long_o have_v i_o go_v to_o sermon_n yet_o what_o a_o barren_a wilderness_n be_v my_o heart_n i_o say_v bewail_v this_o for_o nothing_o provoke_v god_n more_o to_o curse_v the_o ministry_n unto_o thou_o than_o unfruitfulness_n the_o ground_n that_o often_o receive_v rain_n and_o bring_v no_o fruit_n be_v nigh_o unto_o curse_v heb._n 6.7_o why_o be_v isaiah_n send_v with_o that_o dreadful_a message_n isa_n 6._o to_o make_v man_n eye_n blind_a and_o their_o heart_n fat_a that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v convert_v but_o because_o see_v they_o do_v not_o see_v and_o hear_v they_o do_v not_o understand_v second_o love_v that_o preach_a which_o will_v more_o discover_v thyself_o to_o thyself_o which_o will_v acquaint_v thou_o with_o thy_o own_o deformity_n as_o sore_a eye_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o light_n so_o many_o man_n have_v so_o much_o guilt_n within_o and_o live_v in_o so_o many_o secret_a corruption_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o have_v the_o word_n come_v with_o all_o its_o might_n upon_o they_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o god_n bless_v it_o not_o with_o increase_n when_o thou_o love_v it_o not_o and_o bring_v it_o not_o home_n to_o thou_o can_v the_o plaster_n cure_n if_o thou_o be_v afraid_a to_o lay_v it_o to_o the_o sore_a they_o that_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o antechrist_n be_v so_o punish_v because_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o 2_o thes_n 2.10_o yea_o the_o very_a heathen_n be_v deliver_v up_o to_o those_o unnatural_a lust_n because_o they_o detain_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n rom._n 1._o how_o then_o will_v god_n punish_v thou_o who_o hate_v and_o kick_v at_o those_o thing_n that_o will_v convert_v thou_o be_o i_o become_v your_o enemy_n because_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n say_v paul_n gal._n 4.16_o those_o thing_n that_o have_v the_o best_a operation_n have_v many_o time_n the_o unpleasant_a taste_n oh_o say_v then_o let_v the_o sermon_n smite_v i_o let_v it_o tell_v i_o of_o all_o that_o ever_o i_o do_v i_o shall_v love_v it_o the_o better_a three_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v god_n give_v the_o increase_n come_v not_o prepossess_v with_o thy_o own_o righteousness_n with_o thy_o own_o good_a heart_n our_o saviour_n preach_v have_v no_o success_n though_o in_o he_o be_v the_o treasure_n of_o all_o wisdom_n because_o his_o hearer_n be_v those_o that_o justify_v themselves_o the_o humble_a he_o will_v teach_v his_o way_n laodicea_n that_o think_v she_o want_v nothing_o be_v further_a from_o cure_n do_v not_o think_v i_o be_o well_o enough_o already_o i_o need_v no_o change_n say_v oh_o my_o soul_n what_o be_v thou_o come_v hither_o for_o to_o day_n be_v it_o not_o to_o see_v that_o evil_a and_o folly_n in_o thy_o flesh_n thou_o never_o perceive_v be_v thou_o not_o yet_o to_o lay_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o godliness_n it_o make_v all_o out_o of_o order_n use_v 1_o be_v it_o god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n then_o we_o minister_n be_v not_o to_o be_v inordinate_o cast_v down_o if_o people_n receive_v no_o divine_a stamp_n on_o they_o if_o we_o water_v not_o if_o we_o plant_v not_o then_o woe_n be_v to_o we_o but_o when_o both_o be_v do_v yet_o if_o there_o be_v no_o increase_n that_o be_v our_o misery_n not_o our_o sin_n god_n will_v give_v to_o every_o minister_n according_a to_o his_o work_n not_o according_a to_o his_o success_n i_o have_v labour_v more_o abundant_o say_v paul_n he_o do_v not_o say_v he_o have_v success_n more_o than_o all_o other_o do_v not_o the_o prophet_n yea_o christ_n himself_o complain_v for_o want_v of_o this_o spiritual_a increase_n it_o can_v but_o grieve_v we_o to_o see_v people_n damn_v themselves_o yet_o how_o can_v we_o hinder_v a_o wilful_a people_n from_o destruction_n use_v 2._o to_o the_o people_n sigh_v and_o mourn_v unto_o god_n in_o earnest_a prayer_n for_o this_o increase_n how_o terrible_a will_v it_o be_v if_o the_o want_n of_o profit_v be_v in_o yourselves_o you_o do_v not_o what_o god_n will_v have_v you_o if_o the_o patient_a distemper_n himself_o wilful_o all_o the_o physic_n in_o the_o world_n can_v cure_v he_o know_v there_o be_v some_o heavy_a curse_n why_o after_o all_o the_o plant_n and_o water_v yet_o god_n give_v
heart_n melt_v and_o bleed_v he_o make_v the_o rough_a and_o violent_a tame_a and_o mild_a oh_o then_o in_o all_o our_o preach_a and_o soul-administrations_a look_v up_o high_o still_o cast_v your_o eye_n upon_o god_n man_n do_v not_o live_v by_o natural_a bread_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n mouth_n so_o neither_o by_o the_o spiritual_a bread_n o_o lord_n make_v our_o heart_n other_o heart_n our_o affection_n other_o affection_n three_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n when_o he_o make_v the_o word_n preach_v to_o take_v root_n and_o settle_v in_o man_n heart_n our_o saviour_n purposely_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o in_o his_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a that_o go_v out_o to_o sow_v and_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o the_o most_o hopeful_a crop_n be_v because_o it_o have_v no_o root_n mat._n 13._o while_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o ear_n or_o float_v only_o in_o the_o affection_n it_o be_v like_a seed_n on_o the_o ground_n surface_n there_o will_v be_v no_o good_a of_o it_o till_o it_o take_v inward_a root_n this_o be_v call_v dwell_v in_o a_o man_n let_v the_o word_n dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n col._n 3.16_o let_v not_o our_o sermon_n be_v as_o you_o yourselves_o be_v pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n god_n many_o time_n threaten_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n to_o root_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n as_o man_n do_v tree_n and_o plant_n which_o be_v a_o irrecoverable_a destruction_n when_o the_o root_n be_v pull_v up_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n and_o one_o main_a cause_n be_v because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o take_v any_o deep_a root_n in_o they_o think_v it_o not_o then_o enough_o to_o hear_v it_o no_o nor_o to_o write_v it_o or_o repeat_v it_o or_o confer_v of_o it_o but_o let_v it_o be_v root_v in_o thy_o vital_a part_n if_o the_o ground_n you_o till_o and_o sow_v shall_v yield_v no_o more_o increase_n than_o thy_o heart_n do_v to_o god_n thou_o will_v give_v over_o thy_o labour_n as_o a_o vain_a thing_n and_o one_o main_a reason_n of_o this_o barrenness_n be_v those_o thing_n go_v not_o home_n to_o your_o heart_n they_o reach_v not_o to_o the_o inward_a part_n four_o god_n give_v increase_v when_o he_o make_v this_o root_a word_n to_o grow_v for_o as_o there_o be_v in_o corn_n first_o the_o blade_n and_o then_o the_o ear_n it_o come_v to_o perfection_n by_o degree_n so_o it_o be_v here_o the_o word_n carry_v a_o man_n up_o by_o degree_n towards_o heaven_n he_o be_v first_o a_o dwarf_n than_o a_o giant_n first_o a_o babe_n than_o a_o man_n first_o carnal_a then_o spiritual_a oh_o it_o be_v much_o that_o thy_o profit_v shall_v no_o more_o appear_v but_o we_o see_v god_n even_o when_o he_o have_v plant_v a_o vinyeard_n hedge_v it_o in_o make_v the_o cloud_n to_o drop_v on_o it_o yet_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o wild_a grape_n for_o grape_n isa_n 5.4_o oh_o how_o angry_a be_v god_n with_o our_o assembly_n that_o do_v not_o give_v this_o increase_n the_o church_n sad_o complain_v why_o god_n ang●r_v do_v smoke_n against_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n because_o of_o temporal_a desolation_n psal_n 74.1_o but_o this_o be_v more_o terrible_a now_o this_o growth_n that_o god_n give_v it_o may_v be_v either_o intensive_a or_o extensive_a intensive_a so_o god_n give_v increase_v when_o those_o grace_n that_o be_v already_o plant_v in_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v more_o lively_a and_o fervent_a this_o may_v be_v call_v a_o particular_a personal_a increase_n man_n be_v not_o only_o to_o inquire_v how_o god_n give_v increase_v in_o the_o general_n but_o how_o in_o particular_a to_o their_o soul_n be_v thou_o make_v more_o believe_v more_o holy_a more_o humble_a than_o before_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v not_o with_o that_o fear_n and_o tremble_a consider_v whether_o god_n give_v the_o ministry_n such_o increase_n to_o their_o particular_a or_o no._n oh_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a thing_n to_o see_v the_o decay_n and_o abatement_n that_o be_v even_o of_o godly_a man_n grace_n when_o god_n be_v the_o same_o god_n the_o word_n be_v the_o same_o word_n there_o be_v as_o much_o cause_n to_o grow_v as_o ever_o consider_v lest_o thou_o live_v in_o such_o sin_n that_o make_v god_n cause_v the_o ministry_n to_o be_v barren_a to_o thou_o or_o else_o it_o may_v grow_v extensive_o and_o so_o god_n give_v increase_v when_o the_o word_n spread_v itself_o further_a to_o more_o person_n or_o nation_n those_o that_o do_v not_o mind_n or_o regard_v heavenly_a thing_n do_v now_o lay_v they_o deep_o to_o heart_n and_o the_o people_n that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n have_v now_o light_v shine_v on_o they_o thus_o our_o saviour_n compare_v the_o gospel_n to_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n mat._n 13.13_o the_o least_o of_o all_o seed_n which_o yet_o in_o time_n grow_v very_o great_a and_o god_n power_n and_o goodness_n have_v be_v very_o remarkable_a herein_o make_v the_o word_n to_o thrive_v and_o prosper_v in_o those_o part_n and_o among_o that_o people_n where_o the_o earthly_a or_o material_a sword_n can_v make_v no_o entrance_n in_o these_o respect_n god_n give_v the_o increase_n the_o work_n may_v be_v of_o man_n but_o the_o success_n be_v of_o god_n increase_n now_o the_o ground_n why_o god_n only_o give_v increase_v may_v be_v first_o because_o even_o in_o natural_a blessing_n and_o outward_a mercy_n success_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n not_o to_o man_n much_o more_o in_o spiritual_n thus_o the_o psalmist_n attribute_n to_o god_n that_o the_o ridge_n be_v full_a of_o corn_n that_o cattle_n be_v fruitful_a and_o do_v not_o miscarry_v god_n he_o keep_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o give_v earthly_a blessing_n as_o he_o please_v thus_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o make_v rich_a prov._n 10.22_o and_o the_o battle_n be_v not_o many_o time_n to_o the_o strong_a or_o the_o race_n to_o swift_a or_o wealth_n to_o the_o wise_a eccl._n 12.9_o but_o all_o be_v as_o god_n order_v it_o if_o then_o these_o ordinary_a mercy_n which_o be_v whole_o natural_a be_v only_o by_o god_n he_o give_v life_n he_o give_v wealth_n he_o give_v strength_n how_o much_o more_o do_v this_o hold_n in_o supernatural_n second_o god_n only_o can_v give_v increase_n because_o he_o only_o have_v the_o supreme_a power_n and_o dominion_n over_o man_n heart_n we_o be_v teacher_n to_o the_o ear_n god_n be_v a_o teacher_n of_o the_o heart_n god_n be_v the_o only_a searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n he_o know_v the_o thought_n and_o inward_a affection_n of_o man_n and_o so_o god_n only_o make_v and_o fashion_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n let_v we_o then_o look_v up_o with_o more_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o god_n that_o his_o spirit_n will_v move_v upon_o these_o water_n not_o only_o the_o law_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v but_o the_o letter_n mere_o and_o the_o administration_n of_o death_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o enliven_v it_o 11._o lord_n if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o die_v say_v she_o to_o christ_n so_o lord_n if_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o sermon_n thy_o power_n and_o thy_o presence_n than_o it_o have_v not_o so_o often_o miscarry_v object_n but_o you_o may_v say_v if_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n why_o then_o do_v not_o the_o word_n bear_v fruit_n in_o every_o place_n be_v any_o heart_n too_o strong_a for_o the_o lord_n can_v he_o turn_v a_o wilderness_n into_o a_o paradise_n have_v not_o he_o the_o key_n to_o open_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o none_o can_v shut_v they_o answ_n i_o answer_v a_o people_n by_o their_o sin_n may_v provoke_v god_n to_o depart_v from_o his_o ordinance_n the_o temple_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v dedicate_v unto_o god_n and_o he_o make_v a_o gracious_a promise_n to_o be_v there_o present_a yet_o the_o jew_n do_v so_o long_a rebel_n against_o he_o that_o he_o whole_o leave_v the_o temple_n and_o will_v no_o more_o answer_v they_o by_o urim_n o●_n thummim_n lay_v then_o the_o blame_n where_o it_o be_v say_v not_o if_o we_o have_v live_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n have_v see_v their_o miracle_n certain_o we_o shall_v have_v increase_v in_o all_o grace_n but_o we_o have_v not_o such_o preach_n as_o then_o be_v we_o have_v not_o such_o miracle_n we_o have_v not_o apostle_n oh_o it_o be_v not_o those_o great_a thing_n that_o wrought_v grace_n but_o god_n by_o they_o and_o the_o same_o god_n can_v do_v it_o by_o weak_a and_o unlikely_a mean_n conclude_v then_o if_o the_o word_n then_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o life_n a_o soulsaving_a word_n to_o thou_o it_o be_v for_o some_o sin_n or_o other_o upon_o thou_o thou_o have_v grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n god_n be_v angry_a with_o thou_o increase_n and_o therefore_o thou_o be_v like_o the_o mountain_n of_o gilboa_n upon_o
find_v the_o lord_n in_o our_o ministry_n that_o howsoever_o it_o have_v no_o virtue_n or_o efficacy_n to_o other_o yet_o it_o may_v have_v to_o you_o do_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o work_v with_o god_n in_o prayer_n that_o he_o will_v work_v with_o the_o ministry_n effectual_a prayer_n be_v the_o first_o wheel_n that_o set_v all_o on_o go_v prayer_n be_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n hence_o the_o apostle_n james_n speak_v of_o a_o prayer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jam._n 5.16_o work_v whatsoever_o god_n will_v do_v he_o will_v do_v only_o to_o a_o pray_a people_n it_o be_v like_o the_o prophet_n arrow_n if_o that_o be_v stick_v not_o in_o the_o ground_n thrice_o but_o often_o into_o heaven_n so_o often_o will_v it_o bring_v glorious_a effect_n now_o let_v this_o prayer_n be_v work_v two_o way_n 1._o in_o the_o general_a that_o god_n will_v set_v up_o spiritual_a labourer_n in_o every_o congregation_n our_o saviour_n teach_v his_o disciple_n to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v send_v out_o labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n matth._n 9.38_o every_o particular_a congregation_n without_o such_o a_o worker_n with_o god_n be_v like_o the_o world_n without_o a_o sun_n woe_n be_v to_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o alone_o 2._o pray_v in_o particular_a that_o god_n work_n by_o the_o minister_n work_n may_v go_v home_o to_o thy_o heart_n be_v exceed_o afraid_a that_o thy_o condition_n be_v not_o make_v like_o that_o of_o saul_n who_o god_n will_v not_o answer_v any_o kind_n of_o way_n as_o elisha_n strike_v the_o water_n of_o jordan_n with_o elijah_n mantle_n say_v where_o be_v the_o god_n of_o elijah_n and_o present_o the_o water_n do_v divide_v and_o give_v way_n 2_o king_n 2.14_o do_v thou_o say_v oh_o where_o be_v that_o mighty_a god_n that_o wrought_v so_o with_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o he_o second_o take_v heed_n of_o such_o sin_n as_o may_v provoke_v god_n not_o to_o be_v with_o the_o ministry_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o hammer_n batter_v be_v not_o a_o fire_n consume_v many_o time_n because_o of_o thy_o unthankfulness_n and_o rebellion_n the_o jew_n do_v so_o long_a sin_n against_o god_n that_o he_o forsake_v the_o temple_n and_o answer_v they_o no_o more_o there_o thus_o a_o people_n may_v quick_o provoke_v god_n to_o leave_v the_o ordinance_n so_o that_o thou_o shall_v find_v no_o benefit_n no_o power_n in_o they_o but_o even_o consume_v in_o thy_o sin_n use_v 1._o be_v the●_n ministry_n a_o work_n with_o god_n than_o it_o may_v teach_v minister_n first_o that_o they_o be_v not_o worker_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o be_v two_o way_n either_o by_o bring_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n all_o heresy_n and_o false_a worship_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o second_o that_o they_o do_v not_o sooth_n and_o flatter_v man_n in_o sin_n as_o if_o they_o pray_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n may_v come_v and_o not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o second_o so_o to_o walk_v as_o those_o that_o work_n with_o he_o who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o what_o holiness_n purity_n humility_n be_v require_v use_v 2._o to_o the_o people_n be_v it_o a_o work_n with_o god_n then_o lie_v aside_o all_o prejudice_n and_o cavil_n against_o it_o neglect_v it_o not_o thou_o refuse_v the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o thy_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o way_n wherein_o god_n will_v discover_v his_o power_n second_o wonder_v not_o if_o the_o ministry_n have_v many_o time_n wrought_v such_o powerful_a effect_n that_o the_o blind_a see_v the_o poor_a be_v humble_v the_o lofty_a cast_v down_o and_o man_n heart_n change_v for_o god_n work_v with_o it_o you_o be_v god_n husbandry_n you_o be_v god_n building_n the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o text_n contain_v the_o description_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n they_o be_v labourer_n with_o god_n this_o latter_a part_n describe_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o what_o suitable_a relation_n they_o stand_v in_o viz._n they_o be_v god_n husbandry_n they_o be_v god_n building_n here_o be_v a_o twofold_a metaphor_n and_o the_o first_o that_o refer_v to_o the_o comparison_n the_o apostle_n have_v use_v before_o of_o water_v and_o plant_v now_o answerable_a to_o this_o be_v god_n tillage_n the_o latter_a of_o build_v the_o apostle_n prosecute_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n both_o these_o similitude_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n yet_o they_o both_o have_v their_o peculiar_a signification_n likewise_o and_o emphasis_n the_o first_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v both_o the_o matter_n and_o object_n that_o they_o be_v god_n field_n agre_z colendus_fw-la as_o also_o god_n work_v about_o it_o we_o may_v put_v both_o the_o similitude_n together_o and_o observe_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v his_o husbandry_n and_o building_n building_n the_o scripture_n do_v delight_n to_o compare_v the_o church_n to_o many_o similitude_n all_o which_o show_v the_o tende●_n and_o dear_a respect_n it_o stand_v in_o towards_o god_n sometime_o to_o a_o wife_n sometime_o to_o a_o body_n sometime_o to_o the_o branch_n of_o a_o vine_n at_o other_o time_n to_o a_o garden_n to_o a_o vineyard_n and_o here_o to_o a_o field_n and_o a_o house_n every_o one_o of_o these_o similitude_n have_v some_o peculiar_a respect_n which_o the_o other_o have_v not_o and_o yet_o they_o all_o show_v the_o near_a conjunction_n and_o relation_n they_o have_v to_o god_n they_o be_v excellent_a similitude_n because_o they_o partly_o show_v god_n tender_a love_n to_o we_o and_o partly_o they_o teach_v what_o holy_a and_o pur●_n person_n we_o shall_v be_v to_o god_n so_o that_o here_o be_v both_o great_a privilege_n and_o exact_a duty_n we_o will_v first_o handle_v these_o two_o similitude_n joint_o and_o then_o several_o joint_o in_o that_o they_o be_v god_n husbandry_n and_o house_n it_o imply_v these_o thing_n first_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o make_v they_o so_o imply_v a_o building_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o every_o body_n that_o see_v a_o house_n present_o conclude_v the_o house_n do_v not_o make_v itself_o so_o if_o you_o see_v a_o field_n well_o husband_v plough_v sow_v and_o clothe_v with_o goodly_a corn_n we_o all_o know_v of_o itself_o the_o earth_n will_v not_o do_v so_o but_o rather_o its_o curse_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o brier_n and_o thorn_n so_o when_o you_o see_v a_o people_n leave_v the_o sin_n and_o superstitious_a idolatry_n of_o the_o world_n walk_v according_a to_o the_o rule_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n you_o must_v necessary_o conclude_v this_o man_n have_v not_o of_o themselves_o they_o can_v have_v this_o by_o flesh_n and_o blood_n hence_o god_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n say_v he_o plant_v a_o vine_n jer._n 2.21_o even_o as_o the_o pleasant_a garden_n of_o eden_n be_v plant_v at_o first_o thus_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v not_o of_o our_o natural_a but_o church-creation_n say_v we_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n he_o have_v make_v we_o and_o not_o we_o ourselves_o psal_n 100_o 3._o so_o than_o it_o be_v god_n that_o have_v make_v we_o not_o only_a creature_n but_o a_o people_n believe_v in_o he_o and_o worship_v of_o he_o second_o it_o do_v imply_v dominion_n and_o absolute_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o even_o as_o the_o master_n that_o build_v the_o house_n appoint_v what_o custom_n and_o order_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o house_n the_o husbandman_n appoint_v what_o seed_n he_o please_v for_o the_o ground_n heb._n 3.6_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o son_n over_o this_o house_n who_o house_n the_o godly_a be_v he_o be_v there_o exalt_v above_o moses_n who_o be_v a_o faithful_a servant_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o appoint_v what_o worship_n god_n command_v but_o christ_n be_v over_o the_o house_n as_o well_o as_o over_o he_o that_o build_v it_o this_o point_n be_v of_o great_a consideration_n for_o how_o dare_v man_n in_o all_o age_n have_v bring_v in_o such_o superstition_n such_o heresy_n such_o tyranny_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o they_o have_v remember_v there_o be_v but_o one_o master_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n one_o law_n giver_n all_o officer_n be_v but_o servant_n and_o not_o master_n three_o it_o denote_v propriety_n and_o interest_n that_o god_n have_v a_o right_a to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v his_o and_o not_o our_o own_o the_o house_n be_v the_o owner_n he_o have_v the_o propriety_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o content_a with_o these_o similitude_n but_o use_v these_o that_o declare_v a_o sweet_a union_n and_o near_o as_o that_o of_o a_o wife_n to_o a_o husband_n that_o of_o the_o body_n to_o the_o head_n so_o that_o by_o
6.1_o god_n forbid_v see_v with_o what_o indignation_n and_o disgrace_n he_o speak_v it_o god_n forbid_v oh_o then_o far_o be_v thou_o from_o drink_v down_o such_o deadly_a poison_n as_o to_o think_v because_o grace_n be_v free_a thou_o be_v also_o free_v from_o duty_n there_o be_v such_o a_o pestilential_a corruption_n in_o man_n nature_n that_o make_v use_v of_o grace_n to_o patronize_v sin_n to_o harden_v and_o embolden_v a_o man_n in_o evil_a because_o god_n be_v gracious_a oh_o know_v god_n be_v not_o gracious_a but_o a_o consume_a fire_n to_o such_o in_o the_o next_o place_n grace_n consider_v why_o the_o godly_a be_v so_o sensible_a of_o god_n grace_n and_o first_o this_o be_v the_o final_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o good_a that_o god_n do_v enable_v we_o unto_o this_o be_v all_o he_o look_v for_o we_o can_v add_v to_o god_n any_o more_o happiness_n than_o he_o have_v we_o can_v make_v he_o more_o bless_v all_o that_o we_o can_v do_v be_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o grace_n to_o publish_v this_o to_o all_o the_o world_n thus_o eph._n 1._o that_o we_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o again_o that_o we_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n 1_o pet._n 2_o 9_o so_o then_o it_o be_v a_o very_a heavy_a and_o grievous_a sin_n if_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o abound_v and_o be_v diligent_a herein_o for_o this_o be_v all_o god_n look_v for_o for_o this_o he_o make_v we_o he_o convert_v thou_o he_o open_v thy_o eye_n turn_v thy_o heart_n to_o he_o second_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v endow_v with_o a_o ingenuous_a free_a and_o excellent_a spirit_n therefore_o they_o can_v but_o confess_v by_o who_o it_o be_v they_o have_v obtain_v grace_n if_o he_o say_v of_o humane_a learning_n ingenuum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v a_o ingenuous_a thing_n to_o confess_v by_o who_o thou_o have_v profit_v how_o much_o more_o have_v the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o ingenuity_n three_o the_o real_a sting_n smart_n and_o danger_n they_o have_v be_v in_o make_v their_o heart_n full_a and_o mouth_n full_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n paul_n that_o be_v so_o near_o hell_n mouth_n for_o he_o to_o be_v save_v all_o the_o world_n can_v not_o make_v he_o hold_v his_o tongue_n but_o he_o must_v publish_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n man_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o deep_a in_o the_o whale_n belly_n in_o the_o lion_n mouth_n for_o these_o to_o be_v deliver_v they_o must_v sing_v of_o grace_n speak_v of_o grace_n and_o plead_v for_o grace_n oh_o then_o fear_v the_o less_o thy_o heart_n be_v affect_v with_o god_n grace_n that_o the_o less_o it_o have_v be_v affect_v with_o the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n four_o they_o be_v a_o humble_a debase_v people_n in_o themselves_o they_o have_v low_a thought_n of_o all_o that_o they_o do_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v so_o precious_a with_o god_n he_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o humble_a heart_n isa_n 57.15_o be_v you_o clothe_v with_o humility_n 1_o pet._n 3.5_o that_o must_v be_v a_o garment_n all_o over_o we_o and_o wherein_o be_v humility_n more_o see_v then_o in_o give_v all_o to_o god_n five_o they_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v grace_n because_o they_o have_v the_o experience_n how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n spiritualy_a and_o upon_o heavenly_a ground_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v ever_o enable_v thereunto_o they_o can_v but_o exalt_v grace_n nothing_o be_v do_v gracious_o and_o acceptable_o unto_o god_n unless_o it_o be_v from_o a_o sanctify_a nature_n and_o divine_a principle_n and_o unless_o it_o be_v from_o a_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a motive_n from_o god_n and_o to_o god_n now_o natural_a man_n never_o consider_v the_o gracious_a do_v of_o any_o thing_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o extol_v grace_n six_o to_o praise_v and_o exalt_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o very_a profitable_a and_o advantageous_a duty_n also_o it_o be_v two_o way_n profitable_a 1._o it_o procure_v more_o grace_n and_o mercy_n from_o god_n james_n 4.6_o he_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a the_o only_a way_n to_o have_v new_a mercy_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o mercy_n it_o be_v a_o heathenish_a thing_n to_o sacrifice_v to_o our_o own_o net_n and_o our_o own_o power_n tully_n say_v it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n to_o thank_v god_n for_o our_o virtue_n because_o they_o be_v in_o our_o own_o power_n but_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o this_o acknowledge_v of_o grace_n will_v enlarge_v a_o man_n and_o make_v a_o man_n more_o willing_a and_o ready_a in_o all_o the_o way_n of_o god_n it_o be_v like_a oil_n to_o the_o wheel_n it_o be_v like_a wing_n to_o the_o bird_n duty_n do_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n have_v great_a life_n and_o vigour_n in_o they_o freegrace_n now_o i_o shall_v add_v one_o caution_n corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o opinion_n in_o religion_n may_v much_o cool_v this_o duty_n of_o give_v thanks_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o some_o as_o first_o the_o deny_v of_o original_a sin_n be_v a_o great_a engine_n against_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n when_o paul_n will_v raise_v up_o the_o ephesian_n to_o confess_v god_n grace_n that_o have_v quicken_v they_o he_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n ephes_n 2_o so_o david_n when_o he_o will_v extol_v god_n mercy_n in_o pardon_v he_o go_v to_o the_o very_a iniquity_n he_o be_v conceive_v in_o psal_n 51._o second_o the_o maintenance_n of_o freewill_n d●th_v much_o detract_v from_o free_a grace_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o any_o shall_v hold_v this_o when_o the_o scripture_n do_v in_o so_o many_o place_n make_v man_n by_o nature_n a_o corrupt_a tree_n from_o who_o no_o good_a thing_n can_v come_v three_o that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v preach_v no_o not_o for_o direction_n or_o obligation_n whereas_o christ_n and_o paul_n do_v often_o press_v this_o last_o universal_a redemption_n as_o if_o god_n and_o christ_n do_v no_o more_o for_o one_o than_o another_o use_v of_o direction_n will_v you_o be_v a_o people_n capable_a of_o this_o duty_n then_o study_v the_o law_n of_o god_n apply_v it_o to_o your_o soul_n oh_o see_v what_o curse_n be_v due_a to_o you_o how_o often_o you_o fail_v entreat_v god_n to_o affect_v you_o with_o the_o danger_n and_o damnable_a estate_n you_o be_v in_o then_o how_o of_o often_o will_v thy_o mouth_n be_v open_v to_o set_v up_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v ashamed_a if_o thou_o be_v sensible_a of_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o not_o spiritual_a feel_v thyself_o drop_v into_o hell_n apprehend_v thyself_o a_o very_a cain_n or_o judas_n unless_o god_n grace_n do_v interpose_v use_v of_o severe_a reproof_n of_o that_o presumption_n and_o carnal_a confidence_n man_n put_v in_o their_o work_n and_o in_o their_o duty_n oh_o be_v afraid_a to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o good_a thing_n thou_o have_v do_v shall_v david_n be_v afraid_a of_o his_o secret_a sin_n and_o error_n which_o he_o understand_v not_o shall_v paul_n be_v afraid_a though_o he_o know_v nothing_o by_o himself_o and_o dare_v thou_o hope_v or_o think_v to_o be_v save_v by_o any_o work_n thou_o have_v do_v thou_o know_v not_o christ_n thou_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o i_o as_o a_o wise_a master_n builder_n i_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n etc._n etc._n this_o text_n you_o hear_v be_v partly_o declaratory_a and_o partly_o exhortatory_n declaratory_a and_o therein_o be_v considerable_a the_o person_n describe_v by_o his_o office_n metaphorical_o as_o a_o master_n builder_n 2._o the_o quality_n a_o wise_a master_n builder_n 3._o his_o effect_n or_o action_n have_v lay_v a_o foundation_n 4._o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o all_o this_o ability_n according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o i_o this_o latter_a have_v be_v dispatch_v already_o i_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v of_o that_o work_n or_o ministry_n perform_v by_o paul_n express_v likewise_o in_o that_o continue_a metaphor_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v i_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n the_o plain_a meaning_n be_v obvious_a he_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o gospel_n that_o which_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o before_o or_o know_v nothing_o of_o he_o do_v first_o instruct_v they_o in_o as_o rom._n 15.20_o paul_n be_v careful_a not_o to_o build_v upon_o another_o man_n foundation_n which_o be_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n where_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v name_v there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o the_o word_n only_o a_o
doubt_n may_v be_v raise_v how_o paul_n can_v say_v he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v no_o other_o but_o christ_n as_o appear_v at_o the_o eleven_o verse_n see_v god_n appropriate_v it_o to_o himself_o isa_n 28.16_o behold_v i_o lie_v in_o zion_n a_o foundation_n stone_n &_o c_o but_o the_o answer_n be_v god_n lay_v this_o foundation_n 1._o by_o his_o decree_n appoint_v christ_n thereunto_o and_o 2._o by_o his_o temporal_a mission_n of_o he_o into_o the_o world_n but_o paul_n lay_v the_o foundation_n only_o ministerial_o and_o declarative_o by_o publish_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n especial_o to_o those_o who_o never_o hear_v of_o he_o before_o it_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o heavenly_a art_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n religion_n to_o lay_v a_o good_a and_o sure_a foundation_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o their_o hearer_n this_o paul_n make_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o wisdom_n that_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o good_a foundation_n if_o people_n be_v not_o right_o build_v upon_o this_o any_o tempest_n that_o arise_v will_v throw_v down_o all_o the●r_a religion_n our_o saviour_n speak_v a_o parable_n luke_n 6.48_o 49_o like_a to_o this_o of_o the_o wise_a builder_n and_o the_o foolish_a builder_n and_o although_o there_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o every_o particular_a christian_a yet_o we_o may_v apply_v it_o to_o every_o minister_n he_o that_o do_v not_o build_v up_o his_o people_n upon_o sure_a and_o scripture_n foundation_n they_o be_v like_o the_o chaff_n and_o straw_n that_o the_o wind_n do_v drive_v to_o and_o fro_o there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n no_o tru●_n godliness_n no_o true_a hope_n of_o salvation_n where_o the_o right_a and_o sure_a foundation_n be_v not_o lay_v the_o point_n therefore_o in_o hand_n be_v of_o great_a consequence_n both_o to_o the_o preacher_n and_o to_o the_o auditor_n to_o consider_v what_o foundation_n his_o religion_n and_o godliness_n be_v fix_v upon_o for_o the_o open_n of_o this_o consider_v that_o divine_n do_v ordinary_o make_v a_o twofold_a foundation_n the_o one_o they_o call_v fundamentum_fw-la cognoscendi_fw-la christ_n the_o foundation_n of_o our_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o scripture_n only_o we_o can_v lay_v no_o other_o foundation_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n non_fw-la credo_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la lego_fw-la say_v tertullian_n of_o old_a and_o second_o there_o be_v fundamentum_fw-la essendi_fw-la the_o foundation_n of_o the_o be_v or_o existence_n of_o all_o our_o glory_n and_o salvation_n and_o that_o be_v only_a jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v the_o foundation-stone_n and_o every_o one_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o only_o for_o salvation_n and_o justification_n so_o that_o as_o god_n make_v two_o great_a light_n for_o the_o world_n so_o he_o have_v do_v for_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n and_o christ_n this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a yet_o heb._n 6.1_o we_o there_o read_v of_o more_o foundation_n than_o one_o for_o there_o be_v practical_a fundamental_o as_o well_o as_o speculative_a i_o shall_v therefore_o not_o limit_v myself_o to_o this_o one_o foundation_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o enlarge_v myself_o to_o the_o necessary_a foundation_n in_o our_o christian_a life_n and_o show_v you_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o wisdom_n which_o will_v build_v upon_o these_o fundamental_o and_o although_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o dispute_n about_o what_o be_v foundation_n or_o fundamental_o in_o religion_n and_o what_o not_o be_v very_o hard_a and_o difficult_a yet_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o four_o unquestionable_a foundation_n which_o be_v the_o four_o main_a pillar_n that_o support_v our_o christian_a building_n the_o necessary_a thing_n of_o religion_n be_v these_o four_o either_o 1._o the_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v foundation_n 2._o the_o worship_n and_o necessary_a service_n of_o god_n 3._o the_o spiritual_a benefit_n and_o mercy_n justification_n and_o salvation_n 4._o the_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o in_o our_o way_n to_o salvation_n all_o these_o be_v fundamental_a and_o necessary_a in_o their_o kind_n to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v every_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o principle_n and_o settle_v his_o people_n in_o all_o these_o particular_n for_o herein_o be_v the_o danger_n not_o of_o man_n body_n or_o estate_n but_o their_o immortal_a soul_n faith_n we_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o first_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o divine_a assent_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n what_o be_v that_o which_o every_o man_n must_v build_v his_o faith_n upon_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n he_o must_v lay_v there_o and_o that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n declare_v and_o write_v for_o our_o instruction_n in_o those_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o come_v to_o believe_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n the_o ultimate_a motive_n into_o which_o all_o be_v to_o be_v resolve_v be_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v speak_v it_o it_o be_v not_o antiquity_n universality_n or_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n or_o the_o tradition_n of_o our_o father_n that_o be_v the_o warrantable_a foundation_n but_o the_o scripture_n only_o thus_o timothy_n be_v commend_v for_o attend_v to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a to_o salvation_n through_o faith_n 2_o tim._n 3.17_o 18._o so_o that_o although_o other_o thing_n be_v require_v by_o way_n of_o help_n and_o mean_n as_o prayer_n interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n god_n assistance_n the_o guidance_n of_o the_o ministry_n yet_o by_o way_n of_o a_o foundation_n or_o a_o rule_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n only_o as_o god_n at_o first_o put_v all_o the_o light_n into_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o star_n shine_v by_o a_o borrow_a light_n from_o it_o so_o god_n have_v now_o put_v all_o supernatural_a light_n into_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o guide_n be_v to_o shine_v by_o that_o hence_o it_o be_v so_o often_o compare_v to_o a_o light_n and_o a_o lamp_n unto_o our_o foot_n so_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n do_v then_o lay_v a_o good_a foundation_n when_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o truth_n to_o be_v believe_v they_o build_v they_o on_o the_o scripture_n make_v they_o a_o scripture-auditory_a a_o people_n that_o dare_v not_o that_o will_v not_o take_v any_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o upon_o scripture-ground_n thus_o those_o berean_o be_v commend_v for_o a_o noble_a and_o ingenuous_a people_n that_o compare_v what_o paul_n preach_v with_o the_o scripture_n they_o then_o have_v whether_o it_o be_v consonant_a to_o they_o or_o no_o act._n 17_o 11._o so_o that_o that_o people_n who_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o instruct_v by_o the_o word_n have_v not_o their_o faith_n their_o religion_n from_o it_o all_o they_o offer_v to_o god_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n without_o eye_n they_o do_v believe_v they_o know_v not_o what_o now_o that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n appear_v by_o these_o reason_n 1._o first_o a_o christian_a faith_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a supernatural_a faith_n not_o a_o bare_a humane_a faith_n now_o nothing_o can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n but_o a_o divine_a authority_n a_o divine_a argument_n suggest_v by_o god_n himself_o most_o man_n that_o call_v themselves_o christian_n have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o humane_a faith_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o believe_v thus_o because_o their_o parent_n do_v so_o because_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n compel_v they_o to_o do_v so_o thus_o they_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o turk_n or_o papist_n have_v for_o themselves_o but_o as_o copper_n be_v not_o gold_n so_o neither_o be_v this_o humane_a faith_n that_o holy_a and_o christian_a persuasion_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n through_o the_o word_n work_v in_o man_n because_o reveal_v in_o the_o word_n 1_o thess_n 1._o they_o be_v commend_v that_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o word_n preach_v as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o indeed_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o thess_n 1.13_o so_o that_o whosoever_o have_v a_o holy_a faith_n he_o must_v have_v a_o divine_a persuasion_n for_o this_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n that_o as_o a_o humane_a faith_n be_v because_o humane_a authority_n speak_v it_o so_o a_o divine_a faith_n because_o god_n reveal_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o alas_o general_o our_o people_n can_v no_o more_o look_v into_o these_o thing_n than_o a_o owl_n in_o the_o dazel_a sun_n how_o few_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n from_o this_o divine_a authority_n because_o god_n have_v say_v thus_o god_n have_v speak_v thus_o oh_o
to_o worship_n god_n any_o way_n a_o man_n please_v and_o the_o more_o way_n he_o multiply_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n may_v it_o not_o be_v the_o more_o acceptable_a to_o he_o do_v not_o man_n hereby_o show_v their_o good_a affection_n and_o zeal_n to_o h●m_v can_v a_o man_n worship_v he_o too_o much_o can_v we_o exceed_v in_o any_o way_n of_o worship_n of_o he_o as_o we_o can_v love_v he_o too_o much_o nor_o delight_n in_o he_o too_o much_o so_o neither_o can_v we_o worship_v he_o too_o much_o this_o do_v satisfy_v some_o man_n in_o their_o multiply_a way_n of_o worship_n answ_n the_o answer_n be_v this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o excess_n in_o the_o formality_n of_o true_a and_o lawful_a worship_n so_o a_o man_n be_v to_o worship_n god_n wit●_n all_o his_o might_n and_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o worship_n there_o may_v be_v a_o excess_n that_o be_v a_o man_n may_v take_v up_o more_o mean_n and_o part_n of_o worship_n than_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o so_o thereby_o there_o be_v a_o sinful_a excess_n so_o that_o all_o thy_o good_a intention_n and_o zealous_a devotion_n they_o have_v no_o acceptance_n with_o god_n and_o while_o thou_o think_v to_o honour_v he_o thou_o do_v dishonour_v he_o even_o a_o platonist_n philosopher_n say_v that_o a_o superstitious_a man_n be_v god_n flatterer_n not_o his_o friend_n now_o this_o be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v observe_v because_o there_o be_v few_o who_o the_o simplicity_n of_o god_n please_v oh_o that_o text_n joh._n 4._o my_o father_n seek_v such_o as_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n be_v worth_a the_o gold_n of_o ophir_n see_v all_o christ_n institution_n the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n though_o they_o be_v full_a of_o majesty_n and_o gravity_n yet_o also_o full_a of_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n now_o instead_o of_o this_o true_a foundation_n there_o be_v three_o rot_a one_o first_o the_o imagination_n of_o a_o man_n heart_n this_o god_n do_v often_o and_o often_o forbid_v oh_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v methinks_v this_o be_v very_o good_a worship_n methinks_v this_o be_v excellent_a there_o must_v be_v more_o than_o a_o methinks_v second_o a_o desire_n to_o satisfy_v and_o please_v the_o sense_n the_o prophet_n call_v they_o their_o goodly_a image_n as_o eve_n see_v the_o fruit_n that_o it_o be_v comely_a and_o good_a to_o eat_v o_o miserable_a delusion_n all_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v the_o exercise_n of_o thy_o faith_n to_o draw_v out_o spiritual_a meditation_n not_o to_o please_v the_o eye_n yet_o all_o those_o goodly_a image_n and_o curious_a ornament_n be_v only_o to_o satisfy_v the_o eye_n three_o antiquity_n custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o father_n austin_n complain_v much_o of_o this_o vah_o tibi_fw-la flumen_fw-la moris_fw-la humani_fw-la quis_fw-la resistet_fw-la our_o father_n worship_v here_o say_v the_o woman_n that_o of_o cyprian_n be_v commend_v antiquas_fw-la mihi_fw-la jesus_n christ_n and_o christ_n say_v he_o be_v truth_n not_o custom_n say_v the_o father_n this_o argument_n all_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n plead_v against_o the_o christian_n use_v of_o instruction_n how_o necessary_a be_v it_o to_o be_v well_o settle_v in_o this_o foundation_n of_o god_n worship_n oh_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o spiritual_a people_n that_o delight_n in_o the_o simple_a pure_a and_o plain_a institution_n of_o christ_n that_o say_v hitherto_o i_o must_v go_v and_o no_o further_o that_o as_o the_o possess_a party_n say_v paul_n i_o know_v and_o peter_n i_o know_v but_o who_o be_v you_o thus_o this_o worship_n i_o know_v and_o that_o i_o know_v but_o who_o bring_v in_o this_o who_o appoint_v this_o as_o a_o wise_a master-builder_n i_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n etc._n etc._n the_o three_o foundation_n every_o faithful_a minister_n be_v to_o lay_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n be_v for_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v reserve_v as_o more_o proper_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o vers_fw-la 11._o the_o last_o therefore_o i_o shall_v insist_v on_o be_v the_o foundation_n for_o outward_a practice_n of_o holy_a action_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o pray_v to_o hear_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o exercise_v the_o act_n of_o any_o grace_n but_o we_o be_v still_o to_o consider_v upon_o what_o foundation_n these_o be_v build_v i_o shall_v therefore_o first_o lay_v down_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o practise_a holiness_n than_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o the_o foundation_n therefore_o of_o every_o good_a duty_n or_o work_n we_o do_v word_n have_v these_o part_n first_o there_o be_v a_o foundation_n by_o way_n of_o a_o direction_n or_o rule_n to_o which_o every_o thing_n we_o do_v must_v be_v commensurate_a and_o by_o which_o it_o must_v be_v regulate_v now_o that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o god_n word_n be_v not_o only_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o manner_n and_o as_o thou_o must_v be_v of_o no_o other_o religion_n than_o the_o word_n direct_v to_o so_o thou_o must_v do_v no_o other_o action_n or_o live_v any_o other_o life_n than_o that_o guide_v thou_o too_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v commend_v for_o a_o lamp_n or_o a_o light_n it_o be_v to_o a_o man_n foot_n that_o they_o do_v not_o slip_v or_o fall_v by_o they_o thy_o servant_n be_v forewarn_v psal_n 19_o and_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v by_o this_o rule_n peace_n on_o they_o gal._n 6.16_o so_o that_o we_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o do_v any_o true_o good_a action_n all_o our_o life_n time_n unless_o we_o do_v it_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n which_o do_v not_o only_o inform_v about_o the_o duty_n but_o the_o manner_n end_n and_o all_o other_o qualification_n so_o than_o whosoever_o do_v not_o pray_v as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o pray_v who_o do_v not_o repent_v as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o it_o he_o fail_v in_o a_o very_a foundation_n he_o have_v not_o lay_v as_o yet_o so_o much_o as_o a_o hopeful_a beginning_n for_o his_o salvation_n a_o second_o part_n of_o that_o foundation_n we_o must_v lay_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n person_n be_v the_o justification_n and_o reconciliation_n of_o our_o person_n with_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o till_o our_o person_n be_v thus_o accept_v of_o though_o we_o shall_v give_v our_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v not_o be_v accept_v of_o thus_o god_n have_v respect_n to_o abel_n and_o then_o to_o his_o offering_n heb._n 11._o we_o be_v by_o faith_n to_o be_v plant_v in_o christ_n and_o then_o as_o his_o branch_n we_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n now_o this_o truth_n be_v very_o transcendent_a to_o our_o thought_n who_o do_v not_o think_v it_o be_v in_o divinity_n as_o they_o speak_v in_o moral_a philosophy_n just_o a_o agendo_fw-la sumus_fw-la justi_fw-la by_o do_v good_a action_n we_o come_v to_o be_v make_v good_a and_o acceptable_a with_o god_n this_o be_v that_o dangerous_a position_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o often_o oppose_v show_v grace_n and_o work_n can_v never_o be_v bring_v together_o in_o the_o same_o subject_n we_o must_v therefore_o in_o this_o matter_n whole_o go_v out_o of_o our_o own_o self_n we_o must_v attend_v to_o the_o acceptation_n of_o our_o person_n first_o otherwise_o all_o our_o best_a work_n be_v damnable_a and_o loathsome_a to_o god_n we_o be_v stubble_n and_o he_o be_v fire_n though_o the_o papist_n think_v it_o hard_a doctrine_n yet_o it_o be_v sure_a enough_o that_o every_o man_n unjustified_a do_v sin_n and_o provoke_v god_n in_o every_o thing_n he_o do_v three_o another_o foundation_n he_o must_v lay_v be_v christ_n to_o receive_v power_n and_o strength_n from_o christ_n only_o both_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o all_o good_a action_n without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o say_v christ_n john_n 15._o the_o branch_n separate_v from_o the_o vine_n be_v dry_v and_o wither_a james_n 1.17_o every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n come_v from_o god_n alone_o as_o all_o light_n be_v from_o the_o sun_n i_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n through_o christ_n that_o strengthen_v i_o say_v paul_n phil._n 4.13_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n receive_v all_o its_o virtue_n and_o power_n from_o it_o so_o then_o whosoever_o think_v to_o set_v upon_o any_o good_a work_n by_o his_o own_o ability_n be_v like_o samson_n when_o his_o hair_n be_v cut_v off_o alas_o those_o philistines_n of_o lust_n be_v too_o strong_a for_o he_o he_o can_v go_v out_o against_o those_o goliah_n of_o temptation_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o here_o be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o most_o people_n they_o that_o shall_v not_o resolve_v to_o say_v so_o much_o as_o that_o they_o will_v go_v to_o this_o or_o that_o
corrupt_a error_n though_o not_o fundamental_a be_v call_v hay_n and_o stubble_n it_o behove_v we_o therefore_o to_o take_v heed_n what_o we_o do_v that_o we_o give_v you_o not_o gall_v for_o honey_n poison_n for_o food_n the_o apostle_n compare_v all_o minister_n in_o himself_o to_o a_o tender_a nurse_n 1_o thess_n 2_o now_o she_o be_v careful_a to_o give_v fit_a and_o convenient_a food_n to_o her_o child_n scripture-truth_n only_o can_v give_v nourishment_n 2._o if_o we_o build_v not_o on_o this_o foundation_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n lose_v those_o glorious_a and_o excellent_a effect_n for_o which_o it_o be_v appoint_v you_o have_v many_o admirable_a property_n of_o this_o the_o word_n of_o god_n enlighten_v the_o mind_n psal_n ●9_n it_o sanctify_v the_o nature_n joh._n 17._o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n 1_o cor._n 1._o it_o be_v the_o instrument_n by_o which_o we_o be_v beget_v anew_o heb._n 4.12_o it_o be_v a_o two_o edge_a sword_n to_o enter_v into_o and_o discover_v all_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o heart_n now_o alas_o be_v the_o foolish_a and_o unwarrantable_a opinion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n able_a to_o produce_v such_o gracious_a effect_n no_o god_n word_n only_o be_v bless_v to_o such_o great_a end_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v good_a to_o consider_v that_o our_o saviour_n look_v upon_o the_o people_n in_o his_o day_n it_o be_v say_v his_o bowel_n be_v move_v within_o he_o as_o sheep_n without_o a_o shep●erd_n mat._n 9.36_o they_o have_v the_o priest_n the_o scribes_z and_o pharisee_n then_o who_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o teach_v in_o the_o synagogue_n every_o day_n yet_o because_o they_o mingle_v their_o own_o sour_a leaven_n they_o bring_v their_o chaff_n to_o the_o wheat_n therefore_o he_o pity_v they_o 3._o on_o the_o people_n part_n we_o have_v need_v to_o take_v heed_n because_o they_o be_v more_o prone_a and_o ready_a to_o receive_v any_o corrupt_a sense_n than_o the_o pure_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o 1_o cor._n 2.14_o he_o have_v enmity_n to_o they_o paul_n say_v the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a but_o he_o be_v carnal_a rom._n 7._o no_o man_n natural_o can_v love_v the_o bible_n in_o the_o true_a and_o heavenly_a sense_n of_o it_o no_o more_o than_o a_o malefactor_n can_v his_o judge_n for_o that_o condemn_v sin_n that_o convince_v of_o folly_n that_o spare_v not_o that_o flatter_v not_o as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n can_v not_o endure_v the_o light_n on_o moses_n his_o face_n but_o they_o will_v have_v a_o veil_n on_o it_o so_o neither_o be_v people_n able_a to_o receive_v the_o true_a and_o pure_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v too_o glorious_a too_o spiritual_a therefore_o they_o put_v a_o veil_n upon_o it_o hence_o you_o see_v how_o quick_o error_n and_o false_a doctrine_n especial_o such_o which_o give_v licence_n to_o sin_n get_v a_o multitude_n of_o disciple_n paul_n complain_v of_o this_o when_o he_o say_v they_o will_v suffer_v false_a teacher_n to_o abuse_v they_o to_o oppress_v they_o 2_o cor._n 11.20_o the_o corinthian_n will_v endure_v false_a teacher_n though_o they_o domineer_v over_o they_o keep_v they_o in_o bondage_n when_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o bear_v paul_n ministry_n and_o do_v not_o many_o willing_o suffer_v the_o egyptian_a thraldom_n in_o popery_n who_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o gospel_n thus_o christ_n complain_v if_o any_o man_n c●me_n in_o his_o own_o name_n you_o will_v receive_v he_o john_n 5.43_o last_o on_o the_o minister_n part_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v take_v heed_n for_o part_n 1._o he_o have_v not_o a_o magistery_n but_o a_o ministry_n commit_v to_o he_o he_o may_v not_o be_v a_o master_n to_o dictate_v and_o affirm_v what_o he_o please_v but_o his_o office_n be_v a_o ministry_n to_o deliver_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o read_v thus_o paul_n that_o which_o i_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o 1_o cor._n 11._o if_o among_o man_n judge_n must_v not_o make_v new_a law_n but_o be_v strict_o bind_v up_o to_o the_o law_n make_v to_o their_o hand_n then_o much_o more_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n bind_v up_o to_o their_o rule_n the_o scripture_n truth_n be_v commit_v to_o our_o charge_n we_o must_v be_v sure_a to_o render_v that_o in_o kind_n which_o be_v betrust_v to_o we_o and_o as_o aristotle_n observe_v he_o that_o be_v unfaithful_a in_o any_o thing_n deposit_v with_o he_o be_v worse_a than_o a_o open_a unjust_a or_o unrighteous_a man_n because_o he_o wrong_v the_o good_a thought_n and_o opinion_n the_o other_o man_n have_v of_o he_o he_o think_v he_o faithful_a and_o honest_a but_o he_o prove_v not_o so_o now_o every_o minister_n h●th_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n deposit_v as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o faithful_a custody_n 2._o he_o be_v accountable_a for_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o error_n people_n run_v into_o through_o his_o neglect_n if_o he_o indeed_o sound_a the_o trumpet_n and_o warn_v the_o sinner_n than_o he_o have_v deliver_v his_o soul_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o wander_a sheep_n will_v never_o be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n if_o he_o have_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o the_o sheepfold_n and_o they_o will_v not_o it_o behove_v we_o therefore_o to_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o build_v for_o herein_o we_o do_v not_o only_o endanger_v our_o own_o selus_fw-la but_o other_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a say_v our_o saviour_n and_o both_o fall_n in_o the_o ditch_n mat._n 15.14_o it_o be_v luther_n temptation_n he_o have_v sometime_o on_o he_o q●id_fw-la si_fw-la tu_fw-la d●●naris_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o if_o thou_o by_o thy_o doctrine_n be_v damn_v and_o draw_v many_o other_o to_o hell_n with_o thou_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o the_o seduce_v be_v under_o a_o mild_a punishment_n than_o the_o seducer_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o excuse_v those_o that_o receive_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o ●●●st_n in_o the_o hand_n and_o forehead_n though_o but_o follower_n yet_o have_v not_o their_o name_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n this_o certain_o shall_v make_v every_o one_o take_v heed_n what_o he_o deliver_v for_o shall_v he_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o or_o a_o murderer_n of_o other_o man_n soul_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o soul_n will_v cry_v more_o terrible_o than_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o body_n 3._o he_o must_v take_v heed_n because_o though_o a_o man_n do_v preach_v the_o substantial_o and_o the_o necessary_a thing_n of_o salvation_n pure_o yet_o if_o he_o add_v or_o mix_v any_o corrupt_a opinion_n though_o of_o a_o less_o nature_n that_o man_n salvation_n be_v very_o difficult_a and_o that_o the_o apostle_n drive_v at_o in_o this_o place_n if_o a_o man_n build_v gold_n and_o silver_n that_o be_v the_o precious_a fundamental_o and_o afterward_o build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n that_o be_v frothy_a unsound_a and_o unsavoury_a doctrine_n though_o it_o do_v not_o overthrow_v the_o fundamental_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n i_o know_v it_o be_v a_o place_n about_o which_o much_o fire_n of_o contention_n have_v be_v but_o general_o the_o most_o learned_a do_v agree_v that_o it_o signify_v the_o difficulty_n of_o that_o man_n salvation_n he_o must_v go_v through_o many_o tribulation_n look_v for_o many_o affliction_n which_o will_v be_v as_o fire_n to_o get_v his_o dross_n out_o oh_o do_v not_o then_o account_v such_o error_n in_o judgement_n so_o easy_o venial_a yea_o almost_o innocent_a as_o the_o socinian_o say_v blind_a man_n be_v to_o be_v pity_v not_o punish_v the_o scripture_n put_v a_o severe_a character_n upon_o they_o foundation_n in_o the_o next_o place_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v both_o by_o people_n or_o minister_n that_o they_o may_v both_o build_v and_o be_v build_v on_o a_o sure_a foundation_n that_o they_o may_v not_o take_v dross_n for_o gold_n 1._o be_v much_o in_o prayer_n that_o be_v the_o key_n to_o open_v all_o mystery_n lock_v up_o study_v pray_v and_o temptation_n make_v a_o divine_a say_v luther_n daniel_n be_v much_o in_o prayer_n about_o study_v those_o seventy_o week_n and_o god_n instruct_v he_o reveal_v they_o to_o he_o 2._o prayer_n be_v not_o enough_o there_o must_v be_v a_o holy_a and_o godly_a life_n thou_o will_v never_o understand_v paul_n sense_n if_o thou_o have_v not_o paul_n spirit_n nor_o david_n psalm_n if_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o spirit_n in_o thou_o as_o be_v in_o david_n he_o that_o do_v my_o will_n shall_v know_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o john_n 7.17_o 3._o neglect_v not_o those_o external_a mean_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o author_n as_o knowledge_n
have_v we_o honour_n three_o we_o must_v preach_v christ_n the_o foundation_n because_o in_o he_o there_o be_v such_o a_o treasure_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o god_n love_n that_o the_o angel_n they_o be_v never_o satisfy_v with_o this_o point_n how_o great_o the_o angel_n be_v affect_v when_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n there_o hymn_n signify_v as_o also_o how_o speedy_a they_o be_v to_o be_v evangelist_n to_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n of_o a_o christ_n glory_n be_v to_o god_n on_o high_a in_o earth_n peace_n and_o good_a will_n to_o man_n luke_n 2.14_o this_o song_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o comfort_n yea_o the_o angel_n say_v peter_n 1_o pet._n 1.12_o desire_v to_o search_v into_o this_o mystery_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o stoop_v down_o as_o they_o do_v to_o look_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n or_o as_o man_n do_v to_o behold_v themselves_o in_o a_o glass_n if_o therefore_o the_o angel_n such_o pure_a and_o heavenly_a substance_n be_v so_o affect_v with_o this_o way_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n how_o much_o more_o we_o for_o we_o need_v he_o more_o than_o they_o some_o divine_n indeed_o say_v the_o angel_n need_v christ_n to_o confirm_v they_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o be_v their_o head_n but_o a_o mediator_n of_o a_o atonement_n he_o be_v not_o unto_o they_o as_o he_o be_v to_o we_o consider_v that_o place_n ephes_n 3.10_o by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o the_o manifold_a wisdom_n and_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n be_v make_v know_v so_o that_o the_o very_a angel_n be_v glad_a to_o hear_v and_o know_v this_o doctrine_n about_o christ_n four_o therefore_o be_v we_o to_o exalt_v christ_n in_o our_o ministry_n to_o lay_v he_o the_o foundation_n because_o in_o heaven_n though_o christ_n will_v then_o lay_v down_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o mediatory_a kingdom_n yet_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n must_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o for_o ever_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n will_v for_o ever_o acknowledge_v the_o glory_n the_o happiness_n the_o blessedness_n they_o have_v to_o be_v by_o christ_n be_v it_o not_o necessary_a therefore_o to_o instruct_v you_o in_o that_o work_n which_o we_o be_v to_o do_v to_o all_o eternity_n christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v lay_v aside_o in_o heaven_n his_o blood_n his_o suffering_n his_o atonement_n will_v never_o be_v forget_v for_o only_o by_o christ_n be_v their_o such_o a_o place_n as_o a_o heaven_n only_o by_o he_o be_v salvation_n possible_a why_o then_o shall_v not_o that_o truth_n fill_v our_o mouth_n and_o our_o heart_n here_o which_o will_v possess_v our_o soul_n to_o all_o eternity_n five_o the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v christ_n the_o foundation_n arise_v from_o the_o ignorance_n of_o people_n who_o do_v gross_o err_v about_o christ_n both_o doctrinal_o and_o practical_o doctrinal_o for_o though_o christ_n be_v in_o every_o man_n mouth_n yet_o few_o have_v knowledge_n of_o his_o person_n and_o his_o office_n though_o they_o be_v call_v christian_n from_o christ_n yet_o they_o can_v give_v no_o good_a account_n of_o their_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o if_o this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v jesus_n christ_n john_n 17.2_o certain_o the_o gross_a and_o notorious_a ignorance_n in_o many_o proclaim_v they_o far_o off_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n how_o can_v thou_o hope_v in_o christ_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o know_v not_o what_o christ_n be_v and_o for_o what_o end_n he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o then_o practical_o many_o be_v ignorant_a of_o he_o they_o feel_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o he_o as_o a_o physician_n as_o a_o mediator_n they_o perceive_v not_o at_o what_o a_o distance_n sin_n have_v cast_v they_o from_o all_o hope_n they_o feel_v not_o the_o arrow_n of_o the_o almighty_a dart_v into_o they_o they_o feel_v no_o l●ad_n or_o burden_n of_o sin_n upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o welcome_a to_o they_o six_o the_o necessity_n appear_v because_o of_o the_o subtlety_n and_o enmity_n of_o satan_n who_o have_v continual_o set_v himself_o against_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n i_o hat_n as_o at_o the_o first_o ingress_n into_o christ_n ministry_n he_o violent_o assault_v he_o and_o never_o leave_v oppose_v his_o person_n so_o ever_o since_o he_o have_v labour_v to_o obscure_a christ_n and_o traduce_v his_o way_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n than_o he_o set_v against_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n hence_o come_v up_o those_o many_o heretic_n some_o deny_v he_o be_v god_n say_v he_o be_v only_o man_n other_o only_a god_n and_o not_o a_o man_n but_o in_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o man_n some_o confound_v his_o nature_n some_o multiply_v his_o personality_n so_o that_o all_o the_o subtle_a power_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o this_o latter_a age_n he_o set_v against_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o thus_o in_o popery_n though_o socinian_n revive_v those_o old_a blasphemy_n his_o priestly_a office_n his_o prophetical_a his_o kingly_a all_o those_o be_v quite_o darken_v by_o their_o mass_n and_o indulgence_n and_o many_o such_o abominable_a derogation_n from_o christ_n seven_o we_o have_v the_o more_o need_n to_o exalt_v christ_n because_o there_o be_v proneness_n in_o every_o man_n to_o trust_v in_o his_o own_o work_n to_o rest_v upon_o his_o own_o righteousness_n to_o advance_v and_o set_v up_o nature_n now_o so_o much_o as_o these_o be_v exalt_v so_o much_o be_v christ_n debase_v we_o see_v our_o own_o nature_n in_o the_o jew_n though_o it_o be_v in_o those_o glorious_a time_n wherein_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n manifest_v themselves_o yet_o man_n do_v still_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_v they_o have_v do_v their_o endeavour_n be_v to_o establish_v their_o own_o righteousness_n though_o that_o like_o dagon_n before_o the_o ark_n do_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n before_o christ_n and_o true_o such_o be_v great_a enemy_n to_o christ_n more_o than_o profane_a publican_n and_o sinner_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n preach_v of_o christ_n will_v drive_v man_n out_o of_o their_o civil_a righteousness_n out_o of_o their_o formality_n and_o confidence_n in_o themselves_o which_o be_v the_o strong_a hold_n that_o the_o ministry_n have_v to_o batter_v we_o may_v soon_o dissolve_v those_o gross_a act_n of_o wickedness_n then_o remove_v this_o mountain_n of_o self-righteousnesse_n yet_o if_o christ_n righteousness_n his_o worth_n be_v all_o why_o will_v thou_o be_v a_o christ_n to_o thyself_o use_v of_o instruction_n what_o matter_n of_o woe_n and_o lamentation_n it_o be_v to_o see_v so_o few_o build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n some_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o riches_n in_o chariot_n and_o horse_n some_o in_o the_o work_v they_o do_v and_o thus_o christ_n who_o god_n design_v to_o be_v all_o over_o glorious_a be_v not_o glorify_v by_o we_o examine_v yourselves_o in_o this_o one_o thing_n among_o other_o be_v christ_n the_o bottom_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o thy_o love_n joy_n and_o delight_v be_v thou_o affect_v with_o he_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n as_o the_o church_n be_v be_v he_o the_o chief_a of_o ten_o thousand_o do_v man_n of_o the_o world_n come_v and_o ask_v thou_o what_o be_v thy_o beloved_a more_o than_o other_o what_o be_v there_o in_o christ_n more_o than_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v thou_o say_v as_o aristotle_n to_o he_o who_o ask_v why_o such_o colour_n refresh_v sight_n it_o be_v a_o blind_a man_n question_n so_o this_o be_v a_o natural_a man_n a_o earthly_a man_n question_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n thou_o never_o do_v taste_v of_o his_o goodness_n of_o his_o power_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n thou_o have_v not_o eat_v of_o his_o honeycomb_n or_o be_v feed_v on_o his_o spiritual_a dainty_n that_o do_v make_v such_o question_n never_o lie_v claim_n to_o christ_n if_o father_n mother_n riches_n honour_n and_o thy_o own_o life_n be_v dear_a to_o thou_o then_o christ_n be_v for_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v any_o man_n lay_v but_o christ_n jesus_n in_o how_o many_o particular_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v preach_v as_o a_o foundation_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o you_o have_v hear_v i_o shall_v now_o remove_v some_o objection_n that_o so_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v more_o clear_v and_o then_o give_v you_o the_o property_n and_o encouragement_n or_o privilege_n those_o people_n have_v who_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n this_o foundation_n and_o first_o it_o may_v be_v object_v how_o can_v christ_n only_o be_v preach_v as_o a_o foundation_n object_n for_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n about_o a_o god_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o but_o one_o god_n be_v not_o this_o a_o foundation_n do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v
imply_v 2._o repentance_n can_v be_v evangelical_n and_o filial_a without_o god_n love_n in_o christ_n judas_n do_v repent_v the_o scripture_n call_v it_o so_o but_o because_o there_o be_v only_o gall_v in_o it_o and_o no_o honey_n only_a horror_n and_o terror_n and_o no_o faith_n to_o allay_v those_o wave_n therefore_o his_o very_a repent_v and_o despair_v be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n so_o then_o to_o preach_v such_o a_o repentance_n as_o drive_v from_o god_n fill_v the_o heart_n with_o curse_a horror_n and_o hate_v of_o god_n and_o thereby_o to_o run_v to_o hill_n and_o mountain_n to_o cover_v we_o from_o god_n or_o to_o put_v a_o man_n upon_o such_o penal_a and_o afflict_a labour_n to_o the_o flesh_n that_o may_v satisfy_v and_o appease_v god_n this_o be_v to_o bid_v man_n bring_v wild_a and_o sour_a grape_n for_o sweet_a this_o be_v to_o preach_v from_o christ_n not_o to_o preach_v christ_n but_o repentance_n true_o preach_v be_v to_o have_v our_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n accompany_v with_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n and_o a_o rest_v upon_o that_o blood_n of_o christ_n thus_o as_o it_o be_v in_o repentance_n so_o in_o every_o grace_n when_o we_o preach_v it_o we_o preach_v christ_n because_o by_o he_o we_o only_o have_v ability_n to_o do_v it_o and_o through_o he_o only_o have_v acceptation_n and_o as_o we_o say_v though_o the_o minister_n in_o every_o exhortation_n do_v not_o thus_o name_n christ_n yet_o this_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v last_o we_o do_v not_o transgress_v this_o text_n no_o not_o when_o we_o preach_v the_o law_n the_o threaten_n the_o torment_n of_o hell_n because_o these_o be_v to_o drive_v we_o out_o of_o ourselves_o to_o make_v we_o see_v our_o own_o poverty_n and_o wickedness_n that_o so_o christ_n may_v be_v the_o more_o welcome_a christ_n himself_o though_o sometime_o he_o call_v the_o heavy_a load_v to_o he_o in_o a_o meek_a way_n yet_o when_o he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o such_o as_o trust_v in_o their_o own_o righteousness_n and_o find_v no_o need_n of_o his_o mediatorship_n he_o call_v they_o hypocrite_n he_o bid_v a_o woe_n to_o they_o he_o threaten_v they_o with_o hell_n and_o paul_n tell_v you_o in_o his_o own_o experience_n he_o have_v never_o come_v to_o prize_n christ_n to_o esteem_v he_o have_v not_o the_o law_n discover_v sin_n to_o be_v out_o of_o measure_n sinful_a then_o he_o die_v than_o he_o be_v undo_v then_o oh_o miserable_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v and_o thus_o peter_n convert_v three_o thousand_o by_o conviction_n of_o a_o particular_a sin_n they_o have_v commit_v viz._n the_o murder_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o aggravation_n of_o it_o and_o this_o prick_v they_o at_o heart_n and_o so_o paul_n be_v call_v to_o preach_v of_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o felix_n he_o present_o preach_v about_o righteousness_n and_o temperance_n because_o felix_n live_v in_o the_o two_o contrary_a vice_n and_o also_o of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v thus_o he_o will_v have_v bring_v felix_n to_o the_o esteem_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o to_o preach_v the_o law_n in_o the_o purity_n of_o it_o in_o the_o curse_a nature_n of_o it_o to_o preach_v hell_n and_o the_o eternal_a torment_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a because_o this_o be_v to_o make_v way_n for_o christ_n this_o be_v to_o put_v iron_n in_o the_o fire_n that_o so_o be_v soften_v it_o may_v be_v put_v into_o any_o fashion_n thus_o we_o have_v remove_v the_o objection_n and_o show_v you_o that_o though_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v preach_v beside_o christ_n yet_o reductive_o all_o thing_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o at_o last_o they_o be_v but_o as_o the_o river_n that_o come_v from_o the_o sea_n and_o empty_v themselves_o therein_o i_o shall_v conclude_v thi●_n text_n with_o show_v you_o christ_n the_o great_a advantage_n that_o people_n have_v who_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n first_o they_o be_v a_o sound_a steadfast_a people_n not_o carry_v away_o as_o the_o chaff_n and_o straw_n be_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n heb._n 13._o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o for_o ever_o and_o then_o follow_v be_v not_o carry_v about_o with_o divers_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n the_o connexion_n be_v thus_o make_v by_o some_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v still_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o do_v you_o retain_v the_o same_o steadfast_a faith_n oh_o when_o man_n be_v not_o build_v on_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o their_o own_o opinion_n their_o own_o conceit_n they_o have_v reubens_n curse_v unstable_a like_o water_n col_fw-fr 2._o they_o that_o fall_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o angel_n and_o saint_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o head_n look_v then_o to_o what_o thy_o faith_n thy_o soul_n be_v bottom_v upon_o whether_o christ_n be_v thy_o teacher_n or_o thou_o be_v thy_o own_o teacher_n now_o this_o steadfastness_n and_o immoveablenesse_n of_o those_o that_o be_v found_v on_o christ_n appear_v in_o their_o resist_n of_o the_o violence_n of_o persecution_n and_o the_o subtlety_n of_o heresy_n in_o the_o one_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o roar_a lion_n in_o the_o other_o he_o be_v a_o glister_a slide_a serpent_n the_o one_o be_v like_o the_o violent_a wind_n to_o the_o traveller_n that_o by_o force_n will_v pull_v off_o his_o garment_n the_o other_o like_o the_o hot_a sunne-beam_n that_o by_o degree_n make_v he_o throw_v they_o away_o oh_o this_o be_v excellent_a comfort_n in_o the_o winnow_v to_o be_v find_v wheat_n and_o not_o chaff_n in_o the_o fire_n to_o be_v gold_n and_o not_o dross_n god_n you_o hear_v in_o this_o text_n will_v have_v a_o fire_n to_o try_v all_o man_n doctrine_n and_o if_o it_o be_v stubble_n and_o hay_n it_o will_v quick_o be_v consume_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o a_o stranger_n they_o will_v not_o hear_v or_o follow_v john_n 10.5_o second_o a_o people_n build_v on_o christ_n will_v not_o be_v formal_a and_o customary_a in_o religious_a duty_n rest_v upon_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o but_o carry_v out_o to_o christ_n himself_o oh_o who_o can_v bewail_v this_o enough_o how_o be_v all_o duty_n of_o religion_n but_o as_o the_o picture_n without_o a_o substance_n as_o a_o body_n without_o the_o soul_n they_o pray_v and_o hear_v and_o hear_v and_o pray_v but_o close_v not_o with_o christ_n in_o these_o thing_n thus_o as_o rehoboam_n for_o the_o golden_a vessel_n that_o be_v in_o the_o temple_n put_v in_o material_n of_o brass_n so_o whereas_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o their_o spirituality_n fervency_n and_o heavenly_a mindedness_n have_v their_o heart_n up_o to_o christ_n now_o they_o think_v all_o be_v do_v with_o the_o external_a labour_n of_o the_o lip_n or_o bow_v of_o the_o body_n we_o may_v say_v to_o you_o thus_o affect_v in_o your_o duty_n as_o they_o that_o be_v look_v for_o christ_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o as_o false_a teacher_n that_o bring_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n do_v put_v these_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o christ_n so_o do_v christian_n make_v their_o duty_n their_o ordinance_n their_o performance_n a_o very_a idol-christ_n to_o save_v they_o but_o those_o that_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n know_v better_o three_o those_o that_o be_v settle_v and_o found_v on_o christ_n they_o have_v spiritual_a strength_n and_o holy_a vigour_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n for_o though_o christ_n be_v here_o call_v a_o foundation_n and_o that_o give_v only_o support_v yet_o in_o other_o place_n he_o be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o vine_n the_o head_n which_o denote_v more_o than_o a_o mere_a foundation_n viz_o not_o only_o support_v but_o convey_v all_o grace_n and_o lively_a nourishment_n to_o the_o godly_a heart_n whereby_o they_o grow_v up_o and_o increase_v to_o more_o degree_n of_o holiness_n now_o this_o be_v a_o woeful_a spectacle_n to_o see_v a_o people_n the_o same_o both_o for_o knowledge_n and_o life_n they_o be_v many_o year_n ago_o no_o more_o understanding_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o more_o growth_n in_o faith_n in_o zeal_n in_o communion_n with_o god_n even_o as_o the_o picture_n on_o the_o wall_n that_o be_v still_o the_o same_o not_o one_o cubit_n be_v ever_o make_v to_o the_o stature_n thereof_o last_o those_o that_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n receive_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o work_n of_o it_o a_o spirit_n make_v thou_o pray_v with_o groan_n unutterable_a a_o convince_a a_o sanctify_a spirit_n or_o seal_v and_o assure_v spirit_n a_o auditory_a destitute_a of_o god_n spirit_n be_v like_o a_o golgotha_n a_o place_n of_o dead_a man_n skull_n or_o rather_o dead_a heart_n they_o savour_v no_o spirival_n duty_n privilege_n or_o motive_n the_o
salt_n be_v the_o fire_n of_o afflection_n by_o these_o place_n you_o see_v then_o that_o fire_n signify_v in_o the_o general_n god_n severe_a judgement_n discover_v and_o try_v man_n way_n which_o be_v partly_o by_o his_o word_n and_o partly_o by_o affliction_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n continue_v in_o his_o excellent_a allegory_n of_o building_n those_o part_n of_o the_o house_n that_o be_v wood_n and_o straw_n be_v present_o consume_v by_o fire_n but_o gold_n and_o silver_n will_v abide_v this_o i_o conceive_v the_o genuine_a meaning_n only_o further_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o the_o present-tense_n it_o be_v reveal_v but_o we_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o future_a because_o it_o be_v usual_a in_o the_o scripture_n to_o speak_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v continue_v in_o the_o present-tense_n as_o also_o to_o show_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o it_o be_v also_o doubt_v to_o what_o this_o do_v relate_v the_o day_n shall_v be_v declare_v by_o fire_n some_o say_v the_o lord_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o fire_n as_o 1_o thes_n 1.7_o other_o more_z probable_o the_o work_n of_o every_o man_n error_n doct._n that_o god_n use_v to_o bring_v people_n out_o of_o error_n and_o false_a way_n by_o his_o word_n and_o affliction_n affliction_n the_o word_n to_o inform_v and_o affliction_n to_o prepare_v the_o heart_n even_o as_o man_n out_o of_o their_o sense_n be_v keep_v in_o pryson_n with_o hard_a usage_n so_o god_n to_o humble_a and_o tame_v such_o a_o people_n sad_o afflict_v they_o that_o they_o may_v hearken_v to_o his_o word_n god_n make_v egypt_n a_o iron-furnace_n to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n they_o lay_v under_o great_a oppression_n that_o so_o canaan_n may_v be_v the_o more_o welcome_a to_o they_o to_o understand_v this_o consider_v that_o though_o the_o word_n and_o affliction_n respect_n both_o help_n to_o bring_v a_o man_n out_o of_o false_a way_n yet_o far_o different_o for_o first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o itself_o sufficient_a in_o a_o way_n of_o light_n to_o inform_v and_o instruct_v and_o have_v threaten_n also_o to_o be_v like_o a_o goad_n in_o the_o side_n but_o affliction_n of_o themselves_o do_v not_o inform_v do_v not_o teach_v god_n word_n be_v able_a to_o reduce_v without_o affliction_n but_o affliction_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o god_n word_n hence_o all_o that_o fire_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o idolater_n and_o heathen_n be_v like_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n calidus_fw-la but_o not_o luci●us_o because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o word_n to_o guide_v they_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v and_o teach_v thy_o word_n psal_n 94.12_o shall_v a_o man_n go_v through_o fire_n and_o water_n give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v for_o any_o error_n or_o superstitious_a doctrine_n all_o the_o imprisonment_n and_o burn_n in_o the_o world_n can_v do_v they_o no_o good_a unless_o the_o word_n go_v before_o heretici_fw-la sunt_fw-la lapidandi_fw-la argumentis_fw-la è_fw-la seripturâ_fw-la petitis_fw-la argument_n fetch_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n may_v strike_v down_o the_o great_a goliath_n second_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o word_n and_o affliction_n because_o though_o affliction_n have_v a_o voice_n as_o well_o as_o the_o word_n and_o the_o rod_n speak_v as_o well_o as_o god_n word_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v it_o distinct_o and_o plain_o affliction_n in_o a_o general_a manner_n they_o tell_v we_o god_n be_v angry_a they_o tell_v we_o they_o come_v for_o sin_n but_o why_o and_o wherein_o or_o what_o be_v the_o sin_n that_o god_n word_n do_v only_o inform_v we_o so_o that_o god_n word_n have_v the_o prerogative_n above_o affliction_n three_o though_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v thus_o only_o able_a to_o instruct_v and_o convince_v be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o exclude_v other_o help_n especial_o the_o ministry_n for_o minister_n be_v call_v the_o light_n and_o guides_z so_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o light_n but_o it_o must_v be_v put_v on_o a_o candlestick_n the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v convince_v heretic_n but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o w●●_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n otherwise_o man_n through_o ignorance_n and_o corruption_n fetch_v their_o error_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n misapply_v which_o make_v ambrose_n compare_v ignorant_a heretical_a person_n use_v scripture_n to_o little_a david_n in_o saul_n armour_n it_o be_v more_o than_o he_o can_v wield_v and_o so_o instead_o of_o defend_v it_o do_v wound_v he_o these_o thing_n be_v premise_v 1._o let_v we_o see_v how_o god_n by_o the_o word_n reduce_v the_o wander_a sheep_n word_n 2._o how_o by_o affliction_n and_o first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v instrumental_a to_o open_v the_o eye_n to_o enlighten_v the_o dark_a understanding_n david_n do_v wonderful_o commend_v the_o scripture_n for_o this_o use_n that_o it_o be_v a_o lantern_n to_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o lamp_n to_o his_o path_n whereby_o he_o become_v wise_a and_o understand_v even_o more_o than_o his_o teacher_n psal_n 119._o this_o be_v the_o eyesalve_n for_o want_v of_o search_v into_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v they_o err_v so_o gross_o about_o the_o resurrection_n when_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v as_o a_o refine_n fire_o mal._n 3._o to_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n how_o do_v he_o this_o but_o by_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o word_n from_o pharisaical_a interpretation_n and_o estius_n though_o a_o papist_n think_v this_o place_n allude_v to_o that_o of_o malachi_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v a_o great_a resemblance_n second_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fire_n to_o try_v man_n work_n because_o it_o contain_v all_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o when_o we_o believe_v hoc_fw-la credimus_fw-la quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la ultra_fw-la credere_fw-la debemus_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n 2_o tim._n 3_o 15._o if_o nature_n do_v not_o fail_v in_o natural_a necessity_n much_o less_o will_v the_o scripture_n in_o supernatural_a these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v eternal_a life_n joh._n 20.31_o as_o god_n at_o first_o put_v all_o the_o light_n into_o the_o sun_n so_o he_o have_v all_o necessary_a thing_n into_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o will_v manifest_v and_o reveal_v both_o objective_o in_o discover_v that_o matter_n which_o be_v true_a and_o subjective_o in_o prepare_v the_o eye_n to_o see_v which_o be_v more_o than_o the_o sun_n can_v do_v though_o that_o enlighten_v the_o medium_n yet_o it_o can_v give_v a_o see_a eye_n to_o the_o blind_a three_o the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v be_v a_o fire_n to_o try_v because_o it_o do_v direct_v to_o all_o those_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v out_o of_o all_o error_n as_o 1._o it_o press_v humility_n not_o to_o lean_v to_o our_o understanding_n god_n will_v teach_v the_o humble_a his_o way_n psal_n 25._o though_o such_o may_v a_o long_a while_n wander_v yet_o they_o will_v come_v back_o and_o then_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o recant_v before_o the_o whole_a world_n peter_n commend_v paul_n for_o the_o wisdom_n give_v he_o of_o god_n 2_o pet._n 3.15_o and_o yet_o we_o know_v how_o paul_n reprove_v peter_n to_o the_o face_n as_o be_v relate_v gal._n 1._o this_o be_v great_a humility_n in_o peter_n to_o love_v and_o commend_v the_o excellency_n in_o paul_n for_o all_o this_o austin_n write_v his_o retractation_n at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o his_o age_n which_o argue_v great_a humility_n 2_o the_o scripture_n bid_v we_o love_v that_o truth_n we_o do_v know_v and_o so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v obtain_v to_o obey_v and_o to_o walk_v according_a to_o that_o rule_n phil._n 3.16_o you_o hear_v last_o day_n that_o error_n be_v not_o only_a man_n sin_n but_o their_o punishment_n likewise_o because_o man_n receive_v not_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o they_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o believe_v a_o lie_n now_o then_o the_o godly_a be_v careful_a to_o prevent_v the_o cause_n thereof_o he_o that_o do_v my_o will_n shall_v know_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n joh._n 7_o 17._o foggy_a mist_n draw_v a_o cloud_n over_o the_o sun_n and_o so_o noisome_a affection_n they_o becloud_v the_o judgement_n 3._o the_o scripture_n direct_v to_o earnest_a prayer_n that_o be_v the_o key_n to_o open_a heaven_n treasury_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v have_v if_o any_o man_n want_v wisdom_n let_v he_o ask_v it_o of_o god_n james_n 1.5_o david_n though_o a_o great_a proficient_a pray_v that_o god_n will_v open_v his_o eye_n to_o understand_v the_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o his_o word_n psal_n 119.18_o prayer_n must_v begin_v and_o prayer_n must_v end_v all_o read_n and_o hear_v and_o all_o meditation_n to_o study_v
represent_v this_o though_o many_o learned_a man_n ancient_a and_o late_a have_v use_v similitude_n because_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o god_n beside_o the_o true_a god_n and_o therefore_o basil_n say_v well_o to_o the_o heretic_n desire_v a_o similitude_n to_o represent_v the_o trinity_n dam_fw-la mihi_fw-la alium_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o aliam_fw-la trinitatem_fw-la tibi_fw-la ostendam_fw-la thus_o we_o have_v labour_v to_o establish_v your_o faith_n in_o this_o necessary_a point_n spirit_n now_o i_o shall_v show_v why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d spirit_n the_o word_n at_o first_o do_v signify_v wind_n why_o then_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n assume_v this_o comparative_a expression_n of_o wind_n or_o rather_o why_o be_v he_o call_v a_o spirit_n even_o for_o these_o reason_n first_o essential_o for_o the_o simplicity_n and_o purity_n of_o his_o essence_n and_o this_o be_v common_a to_o every_o other_o person_n for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n second_o hypostatical_o for_o his_o personal_a propriety_n because_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o way_n of_o spiration_n the_o manner_n whereof_o we_o can_v comprehend_v no_o more_o than_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n three_o effective_o many_o way_n 1._o for_o the_o incomprehensibility_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o spirit_n john_n 3_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v and_o no_o man_n know_v from_o whence_o it_o come_v so_o be_v the_o spirit_n 2._o the_o diversity_n of_o his_o operation_n as_o the_o breathe_n of_o the_o wind_n be_v from_o several_a corner_n the_o spirit_n dispensation_n have_v not_o be_v always_o alike_o 3._o for_o the_o efficacity_n move_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o love_v good_a to_o hate_v evil_a 4._o for_o the_o impossibility_n of_o resist_v this_o 5._o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o to_o every_o good_a work_n as_o the_o wind_n be_v to_o the_o ship_n use_v be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n god_n then_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o blasphemous_a scoff_a which_o many_o carnal_a and_o wicked_a people_n be_v guilty_a of_o which_o be_v to_o mock_v at_o the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v unpardonable_a and_o do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n leave_v a_o man_n in_o a_o impossibility_n of_o recover_v how_o dare_v thou_o let_v thy_o heart_n and_o tongue_n be_v thus_o set_v on_o hell_n fire_n thy_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o spirit_n thy_o duty_n be_v to_o come_v from_o this_o spirit_n and_o do_v thou_o deride_v it_o use_v of_o admonition_n take_v heed_n of_o entitul_a thy_o own_o fancy_n and_o delusion_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n it_o must_v be_v a_o capital_a crime_n to_o make_v such_o sinful_a fancy_n and_o thought_n that_o come_v from_o thy_o corrupt_a heart_n to_o flow_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n if_o to_o counterfeit_v the_o public_a seal_n or_o coin_n of_o a_o land_n be_v a_o capital_a crime_n how_o great_a a_o sin_n be_v it_o to_o ●ake_v thy_o sinful_a and_o carnal_a affection_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o two_o proposition_n you_o hear_v be_v contain_v in_o these_o word_n first_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v god_n which_o have_v be_v demonstrate_v second_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o his_o church_n we_o therefore_o proceed_v to_o this_o second_o doctrine_n and_o now_o to_o open_v this_o let_v we_o consider_v first_o what_o the_o phrase_n to_o dwell_v in_o the_o church_n imply_v second_o how_o he_o dwell_v there_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o we_o so_o in_o other_o place_n we_o god_n promise_v to_o dwell_v in_o his_o people_n 2_o cor._n 6_o 16._o and_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n ephes_n 3.17_o all_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o visible_a or_o local_a habitation_n much_o less_o comprehensive_a that_o we_o can_v comprehend_v god_n for_o he_o be_v as_o he_o say_v one_o who_o circumference_n be_v every_o where_o and_o centre_n no_o where_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n can_v contain_v he_o but_o it_o be_v mean_v in_o a_o mystical_a and_o spiritual_a manner_n now_o this_o phrase_n to_o have_v the_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o we_o denote_v imply_v first_o the_o propriety_n that_o it_o have_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v his_o possession_n as_o a_o house_n be_v a_o man_n own_o where_o he_o be_v lord_n and_o master_n and_o this_o be_v worthy_a of_o consideration_n that_o we_o who_o once_o be_v the_o devil_n he_o dwell_v in_o we_o he_o rule_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o disobedient_a ephes_n 2._o have_v now_o he_o expel_v from_o we_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n take_v we_o for_o his_o possession_n we_o pity_v person_n bodily_a possess_v that_o they_o foam_n and_o roar_v and_o be_v throw_v sometime_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o water_n but_o he_o who_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n the_o devil_n possess_v his_o soul_n more_o dreadful_o he_o put_v he_o upon_o anger_n malice_n upon_o unclean_a lust_n and_o noisome_a filthy_a way_n and_o though_o many_o be_v of_o the_o church_n visible_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o own_o particular_a they_o be_v thus_o possess_v by_o the_o devil_n who_o have_v their_o heart_n their_o eye_n their_o tongue_n their_o whole_a body_n so_o that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o walk_a hell_n so_o that_o herein_o be_v a_o wonderful_a change_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v and_o take_v possession_n of_o a_o people_n who_o before_o be_v captive_n to_o satan_n and_o lead_v aside_o according_a to_o his_o will_n 2_o tim._n 2.26_o second_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o a_o people_n it_o suppose_v that_o he_o do_v fashion_n and_o prepare_v they_o for_o himself_o for_o every_o lodging_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o so_o noble_a a_o guest_n but_o as_o great_a man_n carry_v their_o rich_a furniture_n with_o they_o to_o have_v convenient_a lodging_n so_o also_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n raise_v up_o a_o people_n by_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n to_o be_v a_o fit_a habitation_n for_o he_o as_o they_o say_v anima_fw-la fabricat_fw-la sibi_fw-la domicilium_fw-la the_o soul●_n make_v the_o body_n so_o curious_o organise_v and_o diversify_v for_o its_o self_n to_o be_v in_o so_o much_o more_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v spiritual_a life_n and_o quicken_v up_o our_o dead_a heart_n that_o we_o may_v be_v prepare_v for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o those_o water_n genes_n 1._o that_o cover_v the_o deep_a when_o the_o earth_n be_v without_o form_n or_o void_a thus_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v take_v we_o out_o of_o our_o natural_a confusion_n and_o horrible_a darkness_n and_o make_v we_o comely_a with_o those_o ornament_n he_o put_v upon_o we_o so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o have_v the_o sun_n but_o withal_o we_o must_v enjoy_v glorious_a light_n so_o we_o can_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o withal_o many_o precious_a and_o heavenly_a gift_n will_v be_v bestow_v upon_o we_o oh_o then_o how_o few_o person_n how_o few_o congregation_n can_v endure_v the_o lustre_n of_o this_o doctrine_n what_o heavenly_a or_o precious_a jewel_n have_v they_o of_o god_n spirit_n three_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o it_o denote_v the_o familiarity_n and_o condescend_v communion_n that_o god_n vouchsafe_v unto_o his_o child_n to_o dwell_v with_o one_o be_v a_o act_n of_o communion_n hence_o 1_o peter_n 3.17_o husband_n be_v command_v to_o dwell_v with_o their_o wife_n our_o saviour_n express_v this_o familiarity_n by_o john_n i_o will_v come_v in_o and_o sup_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o i_o revel_v 3.20_o so_o that_o what_o be_v speak_v of_o moses_n as_o so_o rare_a a_o privilege_n he_o speak_v to_o god_n face_n to_o face_n as_o one_o friend_n speak_v to_o another_o in_o some_o kind_n of_o sense_n though_o not_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n be_v true_a of_o every_o godly_a person_n hence_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o enable_v we_o to_o cry_v abba_n father_n galat._n 4_o 6._o which_o though_o it_o suppose_v a_o filial_a reverential_a frame_n in_o we_o yet_o also_o godly_a boldness_n and_o confidence_n hence_o he_o be_v also_o say_v to_o witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n rom._n 8._o so_o that_o child_n be_v admit_v to_o sit_v at_o their_o father_n table_n have_v that_o bread_n which_o dog_n may_v not_o eat_v of_o they_o have_v
for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a and_o partly_o because_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o penman_n speak_v or_o write_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o to_o every_o syllable_n and_o word_n so_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v require_v though_o not_o in_o such_o a_o measure_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o hence_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v promise_v to_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n john_n 16.13_o alas_o the_o great_a man_n of_o part_n and_o learning_n have_v many_o time_n be_v the_o great_a heretic_n and_o most_o ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n because_o destitute_a of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o must_v not_o run_v into_o another_o extremity_n as_o if_o the_o spirit_n alone_o without_o those_o help_v god_n have_v require_v will_v lead_v we_o into_o truth_n for_o that_o be_v to_o tempt_v god_n and_o to_o expect_v a_o miracle_n for_o give_v a_o bible_n in_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a to_o a_o man_n though_o enjoy_v god_n spirit_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o understand_v this_o or_o that_o text_n without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o language_n i_o have_v be_v more_o large_a on_o this_o because_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o show_v with_o how_o much_o prayer_n and_o earnest_a application_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n shall_v address_v themselves_o to_o their_o work_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n guide_v and_o lead_v of_o they_o they_o be_v the_o ship_n that_o want_v a_o wind_n yea_o though_o they_o have_v many_o excellent_a gift_n and_o much_o humane_a learning_n they_o be_v but_o as_o a_o swift_a horse_n without_o a_o rider_n while_o they_o want_v god_n spirit_n and_o the_o fast_o they_o run_v the_o more_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n so_o then_o put_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o other_o help_v appoint_v by_o he_o together_o and_o then_o you_o will_v never_o split_v at_o any_o rock_n second_o as_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v thus_o efficient_o from_o god_n so_o directive_o also_o they_o be_v from_o his_o spirit_n the_o guidance_n and_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a ministry_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n when_o paul_n be_v resolve_v to_o go_v to_o some_o place_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n he_o be_v sometime_o forbid_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o direct_v to_o go_v to_o other_o act_v 16.6_o 9_o thus_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v demonstrate_v itself_o because_o the_o jew_n be_v say_v to_o resist_v it_o act_n 7.51_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v first_o dispense_v to_o the_o jew_n yet_o upon_o their_o neglect_n it_o be_v transplant_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o thus_o true_o every_o congregation_n every_o particular_a person_n may_v wonderful_o observe_v the_o divine_a guidance_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o such_o a_o people_n and_o not_o to_o such_o that_o those_o who_o be_v unworthy_a and_o trample_v upon_o it_o as_o swine_n do_v the_o pearl_n shall_v have_v it_o and_o many_o a_o poor_a hunger_a and_o thirst_a people_n can_v never_o enjoy_v have_v or_o such_o a_o ministry_n especial_o every_o godly_a hearer_n may_v observe_v a_o divine_a guidance_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o matter_n preach_v how_o near_o and_o seasonable_o it_o come_v to_o he_o the_o unbeliever_n that_o come_v to_o the_o church_n ordinance_n see_v his_o heart_n and_o thought_n so_o judge_v and_o discover_v that_o he_o cry_v out_o very_o god_n be_v among_o you_o 1_o cor._n 14.25_o thou_o sit_v and_o wondere_v how_o the_o minister_n shall_v fall_v on_o such_o a_o point_n how_o he_o shall_v be_v direct_v to_o such_o a_o particular_a that_o do_v so_o near_o concern_v thou_o this_o make_v thou_o say_v very_o god_n be_v here_o three_o which_o be_v the_o last_o and_o great_a the_o efficacy_n and_o spiritual_a benefit_n of_o the_o ordinance_n and_o gift_n of_o officer_n be_v whole_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n hence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a spirit_n not_o only_o essential_o as_o the_o other_o person_n be_v or_o by_o way_n of_o opposition_n to_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n the_o devil_n but_o effective_o because_o by_o way_n of_o title_n and_o office_n as_o it_o be_v it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o sanctify_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o to_o make_v they_o powerful_a in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o hearer_n so_o that_o although_o part_n and_o ability_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o officer_n choice_n and_o power_n yet_o the_o success_n and_o benefit_n be_v not_o when_o paul_n have_v plant_v apollo_n water_v it_o be_v god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n 1_o cor._n 3._o and_o certain_o if_o the_o physician_n can_v give_v health_n the_o gardener_n can_v make_v any_o fruit_n only_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v in_o these_o thing_n much_o less_o can_v spiritual_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n cause_n the_o word_n to_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a or_o soften_v the_o heart_n of_o those_o that_o be_v harden_v thus_o we_o have_v see_v how_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o gift_n only_o and_o to_o be_v more_o affect_v with_o this_o though_o that_o of_o grace_n be_v more_o excellent_a consider_v first_o that_o the_o end_n of_o all_o these_o gift_n thus_o vouchsafe_v by_o the_o spirit_n be_v only_o to_o profit_v withal_o as_o the_o apostle_n argue_v 1_o cor._n 12.7_o they_o be_v not_o for_o vain_a ostentation_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o seek_v ourselves_o by_o they_o but_o they_o be_v to_o be_v improve_v for_o edification_n now_o that_o can_v be_v call_v profit_n which_o be_v only_o to_o please_v the_o ear_n to_o tickle_v the_o fancy_n but_o what_o be_v to_o convince_v the_o conscience_n and_o change_v the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o man_n oh_o that_o this_o be_v consider_v both_o by_o minister_n and_o all_o people_n it_o be_v spiritual_a profit_n that_o be_v to_o be_v look_v at_o hence_o the_o word_n be_v compare_v to_o food_n which_o be_v not_o for_o the_o eye_n but_o the_o stomach_n the_o more_o useful_a and_o profitable_a the_o gift_n of_o any_o be_v either_o for_o instruction_n or_o reformation_n the_o near_o they_o come_v to_o their_o due_a end_n second_o consider_v the_o plenty_n of_o these_o gift_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n enable_v to_o all_o those_o gift_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o because_o they_o be_v in_o a_o little_a pittance_n or_o measure_n therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n and_o sin_n if_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n partake_v not_o more_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n than_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o so_o much_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o beastly_a profaneness_n do_v overflow_v be_v a_o great_a reproach_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n three_o the_o variety_n of_o they_o be_v also_o very_o admirable_a the_o apostle_n reckon_v up_o the_o diversity_n of_o they_o so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o jacob_n love_n to_o give_v joseph_n a_o particoloured_a coat_n thus_o it_o be_v of_o god_n favour_n to_o bestow_v such_o diversity_n of_o gift_n this_o make_v the_o church_n indeed_o to_o be_v in_o embroider_v garment_n four_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v see_v in_o that_o no_o one_o man_n have_v all_o as_o all_o man_n have_v not_o the_o same_o face_n but_o some_o difference_n there_o be_v which_o make_v god_n providence_n admirable_a in_o this_o particular_a so_o all_o have_v not_o the_o same_o gift_n some_o be_v for_o the_o word_n of_o doctrine_n some_o for_o the_o word_n of_o exhortation_n and_o all_o this_o be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a excel_v of_o one_o another_o there_o may_v be_v no_o envy_n or_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n use_v of_o instruction_n what_o cause_n we_o minister_n and_o you_o people_n have_v to_o pray_v for_o this_o spirit_n of_o god_n without_o which_o we_o preach_v in_o vain_a and_o you_o hear_v in_o vain_a as_o moses_n say_v to_o god_n unless_o thou_o go_v along_o with_o we_o we_o will_v not_o go_v up_o o_o lord_n if_o the_o presence_n of_o thy_o spirit_n be_v not_o with_o we_o we_o can_v discharge_v those_o duty_n who_o be_v sufficient_a to_o preach_v who_o be_v sufficient_a to_o hear_v oh_o it_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o sword_n in_o our_o bowel_n to_o think_v we_o feel_v no_o more_o of_o he_o in_o our_o assembly_n arise_v o_o north_n wind_n and_o blow_n o_o south_n say_v the_o church_n that_o the_o spice_n may_v send_v forth_o their_o smell_n cantic_a 4.16_o oh_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n will_v thus_o arise_v
move_v so_o swift_o because_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o they_o oh_o then_o as_o she_o say_v if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o die_v so_o do_v thou_o oh_o lord_n if_o thy_o spirit_n have_v inlve_v i_o and_o move_v in_o i_o i_o have_v not_o ●ad_v such_o dead_a duty_n such_o a_o dead_a profession_n oh_o where_o be_v thy_o spirit_n when_o will_v it_o breathe_v heavenly_a life_n and_o vigour_n into_o i_o three_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v enable_v we_o to_o kill_v and_o mortify_v sin_n rome_n 8._o if_o you_o through_o the_o spirit_n mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o the_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o sin_n so_o dear_a and_o belove_a to_o thou_o so_o strong_a and_o imbred_a in_o thou_o that_o be_v as_o thy_o own_o soul_n to_o thou_o but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n thou_o may_v mortify_v it_o never_o then_o be_v afraid_a of_o those_o great_a anakim_v oh_o thou_o cry_v out_o i_o can_v believe_v i_o can_v be_v heavenly_a mind_v indeed_o thou_o can_v not_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v lift_v up_o his_o people_n to_o these_o thing_n man_n by_o natural_a conscience_n may_v leave_v many_o outward_a sin_n but_o they_o do_v not_o or_o can_v mortify_v they_o this_o be_v do_v by_o god_n spirit_n only_o as_o only_o by_o he_o they_o can_v cast_v out_o devil_n from_o the_o possess_v thus_o only_o by_o he_o can_v they_o subdue_v such_o sin_n we_o see_v then_o why_o it_o be_v that_o so_o many_o resolve_n never_o to_o sin_n again_o to_o be_v such_o beast_n any_o more_o and_o and_o yet_o be_v overcome_v alas_o they_o go_v out_o in_o their_o own_o strength_n against_o these_o goliah_n oh_o therefore_o pray_v and_o again_o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n o_o lord_n here_o be_v a_o lust_n or_o a_o sin_n dwell_v in_o i_o as_o the_o jebusite_n in_o canaan_n i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o be_v free_v from_o it_o glad_o will_v i_o be_v heavenly_a i_o can_v i_o will_v be_v believe_v i_o can_v give_v that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o thou_o unto_o i_o pray_v thus_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n more_o than_o for_o health_n life_n or_o any_o worldly_a advantage_n whatsoever_o four_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v bestow_v a_o filial_a and_o ingenuous_a spirit_n upon_o believer_n whereby_o they_o be_v carry_v out_o upon_o evangelical_n and_o gospel_n ground_n in_o their_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o precious_a work_n to_o be_v desire_v more_o than_o all_o the_o world_n a_o heart_n with_o slavish_a fear_n be_v a_o hell_n where_o a_o man_n be_v a_o torment_a devil_n to_o himself_o and_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o gnaw_a worm_n that_o never_o die_v but_o galat._n 4.6_o he_o have_v send_v his_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n there_o be_v earnestness_n and_o a_o gospel_n holy_a boldness_n hence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n now_o how_o admirable_a and_o desirable_a be_v this_o when_o we_o through_o fear_n be_v subject_a to_o bondage_n to_o have_v this_o evangelical_n freedom_n of_o spirit_n the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v pray_v and_o seek_v for_o this_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n as_o well_o as_o of_o sanctification_n this_o will_v be_v oil_n to_o the_o wheel_n this_o will_v be_v wing_n and_o leg_n to_o thou_o five_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v comfort_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a hence_o he_o be_v call_v the_o comforter_n john_n 15.26_o as_o the_o devil_n delight_v to_o keep_v we_o in_o darkness_n and_o fear_n therefore_o he_o have_v almost_o swallow_v up_o the_o incestuous_a person_n with_o immoderate_a grief_n 2_o corinth_n 2._o so_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n delight_v to_o turn_v water_n into_o wine_n joy_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n galat._n 5.22_o yea_o it_o be_v call_v unspeakable_a joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n lie_v in_o a_o deject_a spirit_n in_o a_o trouble_a soul_n no_o it_o be_v in_o joy_n as_o well_o as_o in_o righteousness_n rom._n 14.17_o those_o doubt_n and_o sad_a thought_n that_o do_v lie_v like_o a_o burden_n and_o load_v upon_o thou_o come_v not_o from_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o thou_o six_o that_o we_o may_v have_v this_o boldness_n and_o joy_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v another_o effect_n which_o be_v to_o witness_v and_o seal_v unto_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n grieve_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o you_o be_v seal_v ephes_n 4.30_o the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.16_o oh_o what_o a_o bless_a life_n be_v this_o when_o all_o these_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n go_v along_o together_o teach_v sanctify_a and_o comfort_v this_o be_v the_o mount_n of_o transfiguration_n it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v here_o do_v not_o think_v these_o thing_n be_v too_o great_a and_o too_o good_a to_o be_v have_v in_o this_o life_n for_o if_o we_o be_v not_o want_v to_o ourselves_o if_o we_o bring_v our_o cruise_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o pour_v in_o his_o oil_n seven_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v wonderful_a support_n and_o even_o glorious_a rejoice_v in_o all_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n then_o if_o ever_o it_o be_v admirable_a to_o see_v what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v in_o believer_n the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n shall_v rest_v upon_o you_o 1_o peter_z 4.14_o if_o you_o read_v of_o the_o martyr_n burn_v at_o the_o stake_n if_o of_o the_o persecution_n and_o torment_n they_o do_v with_o such_o invincible_a joy_n and_o patience_n endure_v it_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n rest_v on_o they_o alas_o we_o think_v if_o god_n shall_v exercise_v we_o with_o such_o strait_n bring_v we_o into_o such_o trouble_n we_o can_v never_o bear_v they_o oh_o consider_v there_o be_v god_n spirit_n as_o well_o as_o thy_o spirit_n last_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v work_v the_o prayer_n of_o god_n people_n rom._n 8._o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n and_o mourning_n he_o teach_v what_o to_o pray_v and_o how_o to_o pray_v for_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n with_o zeal_n faith_n and_o importunity_n it_o help_v our_o infirmity_n many_o sin_n and_o corruption_n be_v apt_a to_o spoil_v our_o prayer_n he_o help_v against_o they_o yea_o he_o work_v groan_n unutterable_a he_o move_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o those_o prayer_n can_v but_o speed_n because_o the_o spirit_n know_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n all_o prayer_n be_v dead_a carcase_n without_o the_o spirit_n move_v upon_o they_o use_v of_o examination_n try_v whether_o thou_o be_v one_o who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n thus_o dwell_v in_o thou_o oh_o where_o be_v the_o man_n or_o woman_n that_o hear_v we_o that_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o these_o thing_n when_o christ_n speak_v about_o eat_v his_o body_n the_o capernaite_n have_v a_o gross_a understanding_n therein_o but_o say_v our_o saviour_n the_o flesh_n profit_v little_a the_o spirit_n give_v life_n john_n 6.63_o if_o christ_n say_v thus_o of_o his_o own_o body_n than_o how_o much_o rather_o may_v we_o say_v part_n duty_n a_o outward_a religion_n profit_v little_a the_o spirit_n give_v life_n rom._n 8._o paul_n say_v if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o thou_o speak_v of_o christ_n and_o thou_o hope_v he_o die_v for_o thou_o see_v what_o the_o scripture_n say_v if_o thou_o have_v not_o his_o spirit_n thou_o be_v none_o of_o he_o verse_n 17._o if_o any_o man_n defile_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v god_n destroy_v the_o apostle_n in_o this_o seventeen_o verse_n aggravate_v that_o argument_n which_o before_o he_o have_v propound_v viz._n the_o temple_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v aught_o to_o be_v keep_v pure_a and_o not_o defile_v by_o any_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n or_o life_n 1so_o that_o the_o apostle_n make_v all_o false_a doctrine_n and_o corruption_n in_o god_n worship_n to_o be_v a_o sacrilege_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o verse_n he_o do_v further_a amplify_v the_o heinousness_n of_o this_o sin_n wherein_o you_o have_v 1._o the_o malum_fw-la culpae_fw-la suppose_v if_o any_o man_n defile_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o malum_fw-la poenae_fw-la propose_v he_o will_v god_n destroy_v for_o the_o sin_n suppose_v if_o any_o man_n defile_v the_o temple_n this_o be_v a_o allusive_a expression_n to_o the_o custom_n among_o the_o jew_n if_o any_o man_n defile_v their_o temple_n the_o crime_n be_v capital_a what_o accusation_n be_v bring_v against_o paul_n because_o he_o bring_v in_o greek_n uncircumcised_a
flower_n it_o be_v as_o absurd_a say_v aristotle_n to_o expect_v moral_a discourse_n from_o a_o mathematician_n as_o mathematical_a demonstration_n from_o a_o moralist_n so_o then_o some_o man_n be_v present_o conquer_v by_o acute_a metaphysical_a argumentation_n this_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o for_o that_o dictate_v not_o argue_v which_o be_v indeed_o most_o suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a scripture_n bradwardine_n who_o be_v call_v the_o profound_a doctor_n profess_v of_o himself_o while_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a yet_o not_o thorough_o sanctify_v by_o grace_n that_o he_o be_v weary_a of_o hear_v paul_n epistle_n read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o why_o because_o paul_n have_v not_o metaphysicum_fw-la ixgenium_fw-la some_o than_o look_v for_o learned_a demonstration_n other_o be_v ravish_v with_o the_o sweet_a music_n of_o humane_a rhetoric_n and_o austin_n confess_v this_o great_a vanity_n in_o himself_o that_o he_o can_v not_o delight_v in_o the_o scripture_n because_o of_o the_o want_n of_o that_o as_o he_o think_v he_o look_v for_o tully_n flower_n there_o and_o the_o scripture_n simplicity_n he_o disdain_v it_o be_v the_o say_n of_o a_o atheistical_a critic_n that_o he_o esteem_v one_o of_o pindar_n be_v od●s_n before_o all_o david_n be_v psalm_n thus_o you_o see_v as_o it_o be_v with_o christ_n himself_o many_o look_v for_o a_o outward_a stately_a pompous_a messiah_n and_o because_o he_o come_v in_o that_o outward_a way_n he_o be_v a_o slumble_a block_n to_o many_o christ_n crucify_v be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o learned_a gentile_n in_o the_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v with_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o have_v not_o the_o aristot●lical_a demonstration_n or_o the_o ciceronian_a persuasion_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o they_o as_o job_n white_a of_o the_o egg_n without_o any_o taste_n but_o to_o remove_v this_o carnal_a prejudice_n first_o for_o learned_a man_n who_o expect_v demonstration_n consider_v that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n it_o be_v most_o decent_a and_o graceful_a that_o there_o shall_v no_o other_o argument_n be_v use_v but_o authority_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o do_v right_o consider_v moses_n his_o relation_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o great_a force_n than_o all_o rational_a demonstration_n king_n use_n to_o say_v testae_fw-la meipso_fw-la and_o thus_o it_o be_v most_o become_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n to_o have_v his_o penman_n say_v no_o more_o but_o god_n say_v it_o god_n do_v it_o therefore_o howsoever_o one_o heathen_a say_v of_o moses_n bexè_fw-la dicit_fw-la sed_fw-la nihil_fw-la probat_fw-la he_o speak_v well_o but_o prove_v nothing_o yet_o another_o heathen_a when_o he_o hear_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o creation_n by_o moses_n say_v i_o like_v this_o say_v he_o he_o speak_v like_o a_o god_n all_o scientifical_a demonstration_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o divine_a authority_n therefore_o you_o see_v the_o great_a man_n of_o reason_n have_v be_v wonderful_o perplex_v about_o the_o creation_n it_o be_v say_v aristotle_n think_v the_o world_n be_v from_o eternity_n beside_o that_o seem_v reason_n to_o one_o man_n which_o be_v not_o to_o another_o and_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n till_o a_o man_n of_o strong_a part_n come_v to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o it_o in_o that_o the_o scripture_n than_o be_v only_a assertory_n and_o that_o in_o the_o main_a principle_n of_o our_o religion_n it_o therefore_o be_v most_o consonant_a to_o god_n majesty_n and_o that_o holy_a confident_a relation_n by_o moses_n without_o so_o much_o as_o any_o attendance_n to_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v it_o do_v evince_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o it_o second_o while_o learned_a man_n seek_v for_o such_o rational_a demonstration_n let_v they_o take_v heed_n lest_o while_o they_o seek_v for_o reason_n they_o lose_v faith_n christian_n be_v believer_n not_o artist_n now_o what_o be_v faith_n a_o captivate_a of_o the_o understanding_n to_o god_n testimony_n 2_o cor._n 10._o it_o be_v the_o evidence_n or_o conviction_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v heb._n 11.1_o by_o faith_n we_o understand_v the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o faith_n we_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o those_o that_o come_v to_o he_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o argumentative_a discourse_n but_o a_o obediential_a assent_n thou_o therefore_o that_o judge_v argument_n from_o authority_n though_o divine_a to_o be_v far_o inferior_a to_o demonstration_n thou_o forget_v thy_o profession_n be_v to_o be_v a_o believer_n yea_o it_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v god_n testimony_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v religio_fw-la est_fw-la summa_fw-la ratio_fw-la there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n then_o to_o assent_v to_o any_o demonstration_n so_o that_o though_o faith_n be_v not_o reason_n yet_o there_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n for_o faith_n and_o for_o those_o who_o look_v for_o rhetorical_a flourish_n and_o fanciefull_a expression_n let_v they_o consider_v first_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n have_v strong_a and_o masculine_a eloquence_n not_o indeed_o that_o light_n and_o meretricious_a habit_n of_o humane_a oratory_n but_o a_o grave_a matronlike_a clothing_n such_o be_v the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n and_o other_o place_n yea_o even_o all_o those_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o there_o be_v least_o of_o humane_a rhetoric_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o grave_n and_o decent_a expression_n fit_a for_o such_o heavenly_a matter_n ther●_n reveal_v and_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o best_a and_o most_o genuine_a rhetoric_n when_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o express_v that_o not_o the_o word_n but_o the_o matter_n do_v appear_v that_o the_o leaf_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o fruit_n it_o please_v god_n by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v to_o save_v those_o that_o believe_v 1_o co._n 1.21_o if_o we_o have_v a_o jewel_n or_o precious_a pearl_n it_o be_v own_o native_a lustre_n be_v better_a than_o any_o paint_n of_o it_o so_o divine_a matter_n the_o more_o plain_a and_o clear_v it_o be_v the_o more_o admirable_a it_o be_v it_o be_v the_o matter_n not_o the_o word_n that_o do_v convince_v and_o convert_v word_n may_v please_v the_o fancy_n but_o it_o be_v matter_n that_o wound_v the_o heart_n savanarola_n a_o man_n of_o great_a piety_n and_o acknowledge_v even_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n by_o machiavelli_n himself_o relate_v this_o of_o himself_o remarkable_o that_o be_v preacher_n at_o florenc●_n he_o think_v to_o do_v good_a by_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o rhetoric_n and_o industrious_o attempt_v humane_a eloquence_n but_o still_o his_o people_n they_o be_v as_o wicked_a as_o ever_o then_o he_o try_v to_o preach_v in_o a_o high_a scholastical_a way_n think_v by_o such_o sublime_a discourse_n to_o work_v on_o they_o but_o still_o his_o preach_v wrought_v no_o good_a at_o last_o he_o betake_v himself_o to_o a_o powerful_a plain_o preach_v according_a to_o the_o style_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o his_o net_n be_v present_o full_a of_o f●sh_n then_o he_o make_v a_o very_a earthquake_n or_o rather_o a_o heart-quake_a among_o they_o thereby_o so_o overturning_a satan_n kingdom_n that_o the_o devil_n be_v never_o quiet_a till_o he_o have_v stir_v up_o the_o pharisaical_a and_o ungodly_a monk_n and_o friar_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n though_o plainness_n of_o preach_v be_v thus_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o change_v the_o heart_n and_o be_v most_o become_a divine_a matter_n yet_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o eloquence_n and_o oratory_n and_o all_o other_o part_n of_o learning_n be_v the_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o may_v in_o a_o subservient_fw-fr way_n be_v very_o useful_a this_o be_v to_o borrow_v gold_n of_o the_o egyptian_n as_o the_o ancient_n say_v and_o to_o help_v the_o israelite_n with_o it_o qui_fw-la dedit_fw-la petrum_fw-la piscatorem_fw-la dedit_fw-la cyprianum_n rhetorem_fw-la thus_o reason_n also_o to_o faith_n be_v like_o the_o dew_n that_o fall_v before_o the_o manna_n to_o preserve_v and_o keep_v it_o safe_o thus_o have_v we_o dispatch_v the_o second_o duty_n the_o three_o remain_v and_o that_o be_v earthly_a wisdom_n be_v a_o great_a enemy_n to_o those_o spiritual_a and_o practical_a duty_n that_o god_n require_v of_o we_o and_o indeed_o if_o ever_o any_o man_n be_v to_o become_v like_o a_o little_a child_n it_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n hence_o we_o be_v command_v to_o be_v child_n in_o malice_n to_o express_v such_o innocency_n and_o harmlesnesse_n and_o humility_n as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v practical_a godliness_n have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o seem_a foolishness_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n as_o first_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o self-denial_n be_v a_o very_a foolish_a thing_n to_o carnal_a wisdom_n our_o saviour_n require_v this_o as_o the_o foundation_n in_o all_o those_o who_o be_v to_o come_v to_o
castle_n and_o strong_a hold_n be_v say_v to_o be_v take_v numb_a 21.32_o and_o thus_o it_o denote_v such_o who_o by_o their_o worldly_a craft_n lift_v up_o themselves_o and_o grow_v insolent_a in_o their_o counsel_n against_o god_n such_o god_n do_v beseige_fw-fr as_o it_o be_v and_o straigthen_v they_o take_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n 2._o the_o word_n be_v sometime_o use_v in_o a_o judicial_a sense_n to_o take_v man_n in_o their_o sin_n as_o joshua_n 7._o acha●_n be_v say_v to_o be_v take_v in_o his_o theft_n and_o thus_o god_n take_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n in_o all_o their_o hide_a and_o secret_a counsel_n of_o malice_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o light_v to_o their_o confusion_n 3._o the_o word_n be_v sometime_o apply_v to_o net_n or_o fetter_n in_o which_o malefactor_n be_v bind_v thus_o god_n he_o bind_v and_o ensnare_v man_n by_o their_o own_o counsel_n and_o thought_n as_o so_o many_o chain_n that_o they_o can_v stir_v 4._o some_o make_v it_o a_o metaphor_n from_o hunter_n that_o use_v to_o lay_v snare_n and_o net_n to_o take_v their_o beast_n in_o josh_n 44._o thus_o god_n lay_v snare_n and_o pit_n in_o the_o way_n which_o the_o most_o argus_n eye_v in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o see_v or_o escape_v all_o these_o expression_n have_v their_o peculiar_a efficacy_n in_o the_o greek_a erasmus_n make_v the_o word_n proper_o to_o be_v use_v of_o the_o lay_v hold_n upon_o one_o that_o be_v run_v away_o from_o we_o and_o make_v he_o to_o turn_v back_o again_o thus_o all_o he_o thought_n and_o purpose_n of_o crafty_a man_n whereby_o they_o run_v from_o god_n and_o his_o way_n think_v to_o accomplish_v contrary_a to_o his_o will_n god_n lay_v hold_v on_o they_o and_o bring_v they_o back_o whereby_o the_o thing_n do_v contra_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la be_v not_o yet_o preter_fw-la thus_o you_o have_v god_n efficiency_n the_o next_o thing_n be_v the_o subject_a of_o this_o the_o wise_a in_o their_o craft_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o the_o word_n sometime_o be_v use_v in_o a_o middle_n or_o indifferent_a sense_n yet_o here_o it_o be_v in_o a_o evil_a one_o it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o crafty_a subtle_a man_n turn_v themselves_o into_o all_o shape_n and_o form_n and_o they_o be_v common_o very_o active_a and_o busy_a they_o sleep_v not_o till_o they_o have_v accomplish_v mischief_n now_o when_o he_o say_v god_n take_v they_o in_o their_o craft_n that_o may_v be_v take_v either_o as_o the_o matter_n in_o which_o god_n overpower_v they_o and_o destroy_v they_o or_o it_o may_v be_v take_v instrumental_o as_o sometime_o the_o word_n be_v by_o their_o very_a craft_n and_o wisdom_n god_n lay_v hold_v upon_o they_o and_o overwhelm_v they_o thus_o you_o have_v the_o word_n explain_v observe_v observe_v that_o god_n delight_v to_o take_v the_o earthly_a wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o own_o craft_n these_o spider_n be_v hang_v in_o their_o own_o web_n see_v isa_n 19.13_o a_o notable_a instance_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o egypt_n now_o many_o way_n do_v god_n take_v the_o wise_a one_o of_o the_o world_n craft_n first_o in_o dissipate_v their_o counsel_n that_o they_o can_v attain_v their_o end_n they_o attempt_v again_o and_o again_o and_o be_v always_o repulse_v as_o 2_o king_n 46.11_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n have_v many_o time_n intend_v to_o entrap_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n in_o such_o a_o place_n and_o he_o be_v always_o disappoint_v which_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n trouble_v say_v the_o text_n it_o be_v not_o as_o man_n counsel_n or_o purpose_n be_v but_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o shall_v stand_v the_o heart_n of_o king_n of_o the_o great_a of_o power_n in_o the_o world_n julian_n great_a purpose_n be_v to_o root_v out_o the_o christian_a religion_n he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o name_v christian_n but_o galilean_n he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o bring_v up_o in_o humane_a learning_n he_o put_v all_o the_o discouragement_n upon_o they_o will_v let_v they_o enjoy_v no_o benefit_n of_o the_o law_n or_o the_o court_n of_o justice_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v take_v in_o his_o own_o craft_n he_o be_v so_o strange_o kill_v that_o to_o this_o very_a day_n historian_n can_v tell_v the_o true_a manner_n of_o it_o thus_o god_n scatter_v all_o their_o counsel_n and_o their_o plot_n whereby_o they_o be_v confound_v second_o god_n when_o he_o do_v ruin_v they_o he_o do_v it_o no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o their_o own_o wisdom_n by_o their_o own_o craft_n and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a conquest_n that_o can_v be_v when_o god_n overcome_v they_o by_o their_o own_o weapon_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o goliah_n sword_n none_o like_o that_o because_o by_o that_o he_o cut_v off_o goliah_n head_n who_o sword_n it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v no_o providence_n of_o god_n so_o remarkable_a and_o glorious_a as_o those_o which_o make_v the_o very_a craft_n and_o wisdom_n wicked_a man_n have_v to_o bring_v about_o their_o confusion_n we_o see_v this_o fulfil_v first_o in_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v call_v the_o old_a dragon_n or_o serpent_n rev._n 12.9_o because_o of_o his_o great_a subtlety_n as_o well_o as_o poisonous_a enmity_n now_o wherein_o be_v he_o overcome_v by_o his_o own_o craft_n even_o in_o this_o respect_n he_o use_v all_o the_o instrument_n he_o have_v to_o bring_v christ_n to_o be_v crucify_v he_o enter_v into_o judas_n his_o heart_n and_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o priest_n before_o and_o so_o at_o last_o obtain_v his_o plot_n christ_n be_v crucify_v but_o then_o he_o rise_v again_o and_o be_v ascend_v and_o thereby_o he_o conquer_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o power_n so_o that_o by_o that_o very_a death_n which_o the_o devil_n so_o much_o labour_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v destroy_v we_o see_v this_o also_o in_o joseph_n brethren_n how_o politic_a and_o crafty_a be_v they_o in_o their_o malicious_a design_n against_o joseph_n and_o all_o be_v that_o he_o may_v not_o reign_v over_o they_o and_o all_o those_o mean_n they_o take_v to_o hinder_v it_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o further_o it_o three_o he_o take_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n so_o that_o they_o be_v entangle_v in_o their_o own_o counsel_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o such_o snare_n that_o they_o can_v go_v forward_o or_o backward_o nullum_fw-la magnum_fw-la ingenium_fw-la sine_fw-la aliquâ_fw-la mixturâ_fw-la dementiae_fw-la there_o be_v no_o great_a wit_n without_o some_o mixture_n of_o madness_n thus_o you_o hear_v the_o original_n do_v imply_v that_o they_o be_v take_v in_o their_o counsel_n as_o so_o many_o fetter_n and_o chain_n they_o be_v as_o a_o wild_a bull_n in_o a_o net_n eliphaz_n speak_v admirable_o to_o this_o job_n 5.14_o they_o meet_v with_o darkness_n in_o the_o day_n time_n and_o grope_v at_o noon_n day_n as_o at_o midnight_n see_v here_o into_o what_o a_o wilderness_n and_o perplexity_n they_o be_v bring_v and_o so_o isa_n 19.14_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v drink_v and_o reel_v up_o and_o down_o be_v drunken_a man_n fit_a for_o to_o advise_v to_o counsel_v to_o carry_v on_o any_o work_n of_o consequence_n and_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n deliver_v up_o unto_o i_o may_v instance_n in_o more_o particular_n but_o the_o next_o word_n will_v have_v the_o same_o occasion_n i_o come_v to_o answer_v a_o objection_n how_o be_v this_o true_a you_o will_v say_v that_o god_n take_v the_o wise_a in_o their_o craft_n object_n do_v not_o david_n often_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o bloody_a and_o deceilfull_a enemy_n how_o often_o do_v he_o complain_v of_o their_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o shoot_v at_o the_o upright_a in_o heart_n and_o do_v not_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n both_o in_o profane_a and_o sacred_a history_n show_v that_o earthly_a crafty_a and_o wicked_a policy_n have_v accomplish_v many_o destructive_a thing_n and_o that_o to_o god_n own_o church_n and_o people_n have_v not_o antichrist_n by_o subtle_a deceivable_a way_n prevail_v over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v not_o the_o crafty_a fox_n and_o subtle_a wolf_n many_o time_n worry_v and_o devour_v the_o poor_a innocent_a sheep_n all_o this_o must_v be_v grant_v and_o yet_o the_o observation_n be_v true_a for_o first_o this_o be_v many_o time_n do_v and_o we_o through_o our_o ignorance_n answ_n take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v great_a and_o seek_v out_o of_o those_o that_o have_v pleasure_n therein_o psal_n 111.2_o we_o many_o time_n take_v not_o such_o delight_n in_o observe_v the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o for_o want_v of_o consideration_n we_o come_v not_o to_o admiration_n the_o
there_o be_v nothing_o which_o will_v be_v for_o their_o good_a that_o god_n deny_v they_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o all_o the_o world_n if_o it_o be_v good_a for_o the_o godly_a man_n he_o shall_v have_v it_o no_o good_a thing_n will_v he_o withhold_v from_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o psal_n 84.11_o now_o the_o godly_a man_n good_a be_v twofold_a either_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_o and_o necessary_o good_a so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v evil_a nor_o it_o can_v do_v a_o godly_a man_n any_o hurt_n to_o have_v they_o such_o as_o christ_n be_v pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o heaven_n and_o these_o be_v bestow_v on_o all_o godly_a man_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o fear_v god_n though_o he_o may_v say_v i_o want_v riches_n i_o want_v health_n i_o be_o without_o this_o or_o that_o that_o can_v say_v he_o be_v without_o christ_n and_o justification_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o limit_a good_a that_o which_o in_o its_o self_n be_v good_a but_o do_v not_o make_v good_a those_o that_o have_v it_o yea_o it_o may_v be_v turn_v to_o evil_a as_o wine_n be_v good_a but_o give_v it_o to_o the_o feavourish_a man_n you_o hurt_v he_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o all_o the_o temporal_a good_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n they_o do_v not_o make_v the_o possessor_n good_a yea_o they_o may_v be_v turn_v to_o sin_n and_o increase_v thy_o corruption_n and_o then_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o god_n out_o of_o his_o love_n to_o thou_o with_o hold_v these_o thing_n from_o thou_o if_o they_o be_v as_o necessary_a and_o as_o good_a as_o christ_n be_v and_o heaven_n be_v thou_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v they_o rome_n 8.32_o if_o he_o have_v give_v we_o christ_n how_o shall_v he_o with_o he_o but_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n else_o now_o this_o very_a particular_a shall_v rebuke_v all_o the_o wind_n and_o wave_n of_o fear_n and_o discontent_n within_o thou_o be_v thou_o repine_v and_o carnal_o mutter_v thou_o have_v not_o this_o thou_o have_v not_o that_o oh_o look_n have_v thou_o godliness_n have_v thou_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n than_o thou_o have_v all_o thing_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o be_v good_a for_o thou_o that_o god_n keep_v from_o thou_o do_v not_o thou_o blame_v god_n but_o thy_o own_o corruption_n if_o thou_o want_v such_o temporal_a mercy_n say_v rather_o god_n see_v i_o shall_v make_v they_o a_o poison_n to_o my_o soul_n i_o shall_v grow_v drink_v with_o this_o sweet_a wine_n second_o a_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v all_o thing_n because_o he_o have_v a_o right_a and_o a_o claim_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n wherein_o be_v a_o deed_n of_o gift_n of_o all_o thing_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n lie_v in_o this_o that_o god_n will_v be_v our_o god_n give_v remission_n of_o sin_n heal_v of_o our_o corruption_n and_o blessing_n we_o with_o all_o temporal_a blessing_n this_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n and_o so_o with_o all_o believer_n therefore_o godliness_n be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4.8_o all_o heavenly_a and_o earthly_a thing_n be_v by_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o godly_a only_o heavenly_a thing_n absolute_o earthly_a thing_n conditional_o and_o with_o subordination_n and_o exception_n so_o then_o it_o be_v with_o thou_o as_o some_o man_n who_o have_v all_o his_o estate_n lie_v in_o bond_n and_o covenant_n though_o for_o the_o present_a he_o can_v command_v such_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n yet_o he_o be_v rich_a in_o bond_n thus_o the_o godly_a man_n have_v sure_a bond_n and_o promise_n even_o of_o god_n own_o make_n who_o can_v lie_v or_o deceive_v and_o therefore_o he_o may_v be_v as_o much_o support_v as_o if_o he_o have_v the_o thing_n themselves_o hence_o arise_v that_o life_n of_o faith_n habakkuk_n and_o godly_a man_n have_v in_o their_o great_a extremity_n and_o necessity_n three_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_a man_n because_o he_o have_v god_n for_o his_o god_n who_o have_v all_o thing_n qui_fw-la habet_fw-la habentem_fw-la omne_fw-la habet_fw-la omne_fw-la he_o that_o have_v the_o sun_n have_v the_o light_n of_o all_o the_o star_n he_o that_o have_v the_o ocean_n have_v all_o the_o stream_n deus_fw-la meus_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la as_o he_o say_v hence_o our_o happiness_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o this_o if_o we_o have_v the_o lord_n for_o our_o god_n david_n in_o all_o his_o exigency_n support_v himself_o with_o this_o that_o god_n be_v his_o portion_n and_o his_o inheritance_n now_o he_o be_v such_o a_o portion_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o good_a beside_o have_v he_o and_o you_o have_v all_o though_o a_o child_n have_v not_o money_n and_o raiment_n at_o his_o command_n yet_o because_o he_o have_v a_o rich_a father_n who_o can_v procure_v all_o these_o thing_n therefore_o he_o may_v be_v well_o say_v to_o have_v they_o all_o thou_o shall_v not_o want_v as_o long_o as_o god_n have_v it_o if_o god_n have_v it_o thou_o shall_v have_v it_o and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o desire_v four_o a_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v all_o thing_n because_o godliness_n work_v such_o a_o holy_a contentation_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o spirit_n that_o in_o what_o estate_n he_o be_v he_o be_v as_o well_o please_v as_o if_o he_o have_v all_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o have_v the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o it_o be_v call_v godliness_n with_o content_n 1_o tim._n 6_o 6_o viz._n which_o work_v and_o cause_v contentment_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o thus_o paul_n i_o have_v learned_a to_o be_v content_a in_o all_o condition_n i_o have_v all_o thing_n i_o want_v nothing_o phil._n 4_o 11_o 12_o that_o which_o pride_n and_o presumption_n put_v some_o upon_o to_o say_v they_o want_v nothing_o for_o which_o god_n severe_o reprove_v they_o here_o true_a grace_n put_v the_o godly_a upon_o here_o be_v a_o godly_a dives_fw-la that_o may_v say_v soul_n take_v thy_o spiritual_a ease_n for_o thou_o have_v not_o many_o but_o all_o good_a thing_n lay_v up_o for_o thou_o thus_o all_o thing_n be_v they_o because_o through_o contentation_n they_o have_v all_o thing_n five_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_a man_n because_o they_o be_v make_v finaliter_fw-la for_o he_o they_o be_v all_o for_o his_o spiritual_a use_n if_o you_o regard_v the_o office_n and_o ordinance_n in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v all_o for_o the_o church_n either_o to_o begin_v increase_n or_o consummate_v grace_n if_o you_o look_v upon_o the_o whole_a creation_n there_o be_v no_o creature_n therein_o but_o the_o godly_a thereby_o do_v or_o aught_o to_o glorify_v god_n and_o to_o draw_v near_o thereby_o unto_o he_o if_o every_o thing_n thou_o look_v upon_o thou_o hear_v thou_o tread_v upon_o do_v not_o make_v thou_o more_o godly_a thou_o lose_v the_o good_a use_n for_o which_o they_o be_v make_v every_o gift_n be_v give_v to_o profit_v withal_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o and_o every_o creature_n be_v also_o make_v to_o profit_v withal_o at_o the_o first_o we_o see_v the_o whole_a world_n with_o all_o thing_n therein_o be_v make_v for_o man_n which_o make_v the_o psalmist_n spend_v a_o whole_a psalm_n in_o the_o admiration_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o bounty_n what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o be_v thus_o mindful_a of_o he_o psal_n 8.4_o yet_o that_o be_v chief_o because_o the_o star_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o creature_n on_o earth_n be_v make_v for_o he_o but_o with_o what_o praise_n may_v the_o mouth_n and_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n be_v fill_v with_o in_o that_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o all_o the_o office_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v for_o they_o but_o this_o excellent_a point_n will_v be_v more_o improve_v in_o the_o particular_a enumeration_n godly_a let_v we_o now_o consider_v why_o god_n shall_v make_v all_o heavenly_a and_o earthly_a thing_n for_o the_o godly_a and_o first_o we_o need_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o christ_n himself_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o and_o do_v undergo_v that_o shameful_a death_n and_o those_o terrible_a conflict_n with_o god_n wrath_n for_o his_o church_n he_o give_v himself_o for_o his_o church_n so_o that_o christ_n be_v they_o no_o wonder_n if_o all_o thing_n else_o be_v they_o if_o ever_o god_n will_v have_v deny_v any_o thing_n will_v have_v withhold_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v have_v be_v his_o only_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v so_o well-pleased_n but_o this_o he_o part_n with_o for_o his_o church_n yet_o we_o can_v say_v christ_n be_v we_o as_o paul_n and_o cephas_n and_o other_o thing_n therefore_o he_o add_v we_o be_v ghrist_n and_o
good_a and_o so_o if_o they_o abuse_v the_o creature_n to_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n they_o can_v do_v no_o otherwise_o they_o have_v they_o for_o this_o end_n to_o accomplish_v sin_n thereby_o if_o every_o thing_n work_v to_o their_o damnation_n this_o may_v make_v they_o sin_v the_o more_o desparate_o but_o answ_n first_o divine_n have_v a_o good_a distinction_n about_o god_n will._n there_o be_v a_o will_n of_o complacency_n or_o approbation_n and_o there_o be_v his_o will_n of_o efficiency_n what_o he_o will_v bring_v about_o and_o none_o shall_v hinder_v now_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n approbation_n that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v improve_v by_o the_o wicked_a for_o their_o good_a it_o be_v his_o approve_v and_o command_a will_n that_o every_o sermon_n shall_v be_v receive_v by_o faith_n that_o every_o mercy_n be_v improve_v fruitful_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n do_v invite_v such_o to_o repentance_n the_o affliction_n and_o scourge_v god_n bring_v on_o they_o be_v to_o humble_v they_o and_o make_v they_o to_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n but_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o will_n of_o efficiency_n so_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o they_o that_o perish_v the_o apostle_n say_v this_o plain_o the_o word_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o such_o as_o be_v save_v and_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o such_o as_o perish_v 2_o cor._n 2.15_o that_o their_o be_v such_o a_o will_n of_o god_n will_v appear_v by_o that_o instance_n to_o pharaoh_n god_n inflict_v strange_a and_o miraculous_a judgement_n upon_o he_o it_o be_v his_o approve_v and_o command_a will_n that_o by_o those_o pharaoh_n shall_v be_v humble_v and_o repent_v and_o let_v the_o people_n go_v for_o this_o end_n moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v send_v to_o exhort_v he_o to_o this_o duty_n yet_o if_o we_o respect_v god_n will_v of_o efficiency_n we_o see_v he_o tell_v moses_n that_o pharaoh_n heart_n be_v harden_v and_o he_o will_v not_o let_v they_o go_v and_o his_o heart_n grow_v hard_a by_o these_o wonder_n so_o then_o god_n will_v of_o approbation_n and_o command_n be_v that_o even_o the_o wicked_a shall_v make_v all_o thing_n they_o though_o god_n will_v of_o efficiency_n do_v not_o bring_v it_o about_o second_o if_o th●se_a thing_n be_v poison_n to_o the_o wicked_a and_o snare_n to_o they_o they_o may_v still_o blame_v themselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o their_o nature_n not_o any_o violence_n god_n offer_v they_o that_o make_v they_o turn_v every_o thing_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n thy_o perdition_n be_v of_o thyself_o o_o israel_n hos_n 13_o 9_o so_o that_o every_o wicked_a man_n have_v a_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o this_o wickedness_n strengthen_v through_o actual_a impiety_n no_o wonder_n if_o every_o thing_n promote_v his_o damnation_n but_o still_o it_o be_v of_o himself_o as_o you_o see_v poisonous_a creature_n serpent_n and_o toad_n they_o turn_v every_o thing_n they_o eat_v to_o poison_v because_o of_o their_o venomous_a constitution_n so_o it_o be_v here_o wicked_a man_n turn_v all_o good_a thing_n into_o ill_n vnumquodque_fw-la recipitur_fw-la ad_fw-la mo●um_fw-la recipientes_fw-la put_v the_o sweet_a liquor_n into_o a_o noisome_a vessel_n it_o will_v have_v a_o ill_a tincture_n paul_n show_v this_o evident_o the_o law_n that_o be_v for_o life_n he_o find_v for_o death_n rom._n 7._o the_o law_n be_v good_a and_o spiritual_a yet_o it_o stir_v up_o all_o sin_n in_o he_o because_o he_o be_v carnal_a it_o be_v that_o within_o thou_o which_o defile_v all_o without_o thou_o wicked_a man_n sin_n as_o wilful_o and_o as_o industrious_o attend_v to_o pervert_v all_o thing_n to_o their_o damnation_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o contract_a necessity_n upon_o they_o to_o offend_v against_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o three_o doubt_n be_v if_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_z why_o then_o be_v they_o so_o uncomfortable_a doubt_n so_o deject_v complain_v of_o want_n as_o if_o nothing_o be_v they_o if_o this_o be_v true_a we_o will_v think_v no_o godly_a man_n shall_v ever_o be_v in_o a_o plunge_n he_o may_v take_v up_o this_o text_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o antidote_n against_o all_o fear_n and_o care_n it_o can_v be_v no_o night_n with_o he_o as_o long_o as_o this_o sun_n shine_v answ_n it_o be_v true_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o we_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n answ_n we_o do_v not_o live_v upon_o scripture-principle_n and_o privilege_n but_o sensible_a and_o then_o we_o stagger_v and_o reel_v up_o and_o down_o while_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o our_o foot_n we_o walk_v in_o light_n and_o comfort_n david_n when_o his_o faith_n be_v lively_a than_o god_n be_v his_o shepherd_n he_o shall_v want_v nothing_o and_o he_o will_v lay_v he_o down_o and_o sleep_v because_o god_n take_v care_n for_o he_o but_o let_v he_o come_v from_o this_o mountain_n of_o faith_n and_o look_v on_o the_o water_n of_o affliction_n below_o his_o head_n go_v round_o and_o he_o know_v not_o where_o he_o be_v now_o a_o twofold_a faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o bear_v up_o the_o head_n and_o heart_n the_o one_o firm_o assent_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o other_o fiducial_o apply_v they_o to_o ourselves_o if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o first_o faith_n we_o look_v upon_o such_o thing_n as_o mere_a good_a word_n as_o bare_a expression_n even_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v think_v he_o have_v such_o a_o country_n because_o he_o have_v the_o map_n of_o it_o oh_o this_o divine_a historical_a faith_n strong_o persuade_v ourselves_o these_o thing_n be_v god_n truth_n they_o can_v be_v a_o lie_n they_o can_v deceive_v we_o will_v great_o establish_v we_o and_o then_o fiducial_a application_n be_v the_o hand_n that_o take_v these_o thing_n make_v they_o to_o be_v we_o so_o that_o if_o you_o ask_v how_o all_o present_a and_o future_a thing_n life_n and_o death_n be_v we_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n only_o a_o quiet_a rest_a and_o repose_v of_o the_o soul_n upon_o god_n promise_n put_v we_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n second_o as_o they_o want_v faith_n so_o a_o heavenly_a prudence_n and_o skill_n how_o to_o improve_v they_o spiritual_o though_o all_o thing_n be_v for_o their_o good_a yet_o they_o must_v have_v wisdom_n to_o know_v how_o to_o use_v all_o thing_n therefore_o paul_n who_o say_v he_o have_v all_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v instruct_v in_o it_o as_o in_o a_o mystery_n phil._n 4.11_o prescribe_v the_o best_a medicine_n in_o the_o world_n if_o man_n have_v not_o judgement_n right_o to_o order_v they_o they_o can_v never_o get_v good_a what_o be_v a_o fountain_n seal_v up_o or_o a_o book_n that_o can_v be_v read_v though_o it_o have_v never_o such_o admirable_a matter_n thus_o be_v all_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o useful_a if_o thou_o have_v not_o christian_a wisdom_n there_o be_v no_o condition_n affliction_n or_o event_n but_o thou_o may_v say_v if_o i_o have_v heavenly_a wisdom_n i_o may_v make_v excellent_a use_n of_o it_o object_n the_o last_o doubt_n be_v how_o be_v all_o thing_n the_o godly_a man_n see_v for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o be_v most_o want_v they_o be_v in_o the_o great_a necessity_n have_v not_o dives_n all_o thing_n when_o lazarus_n have_v not_o not_o so_o much_o as_o crumb_n do_v not_o this_o doctrine_n give_v a_o mock-comfort_n as_o those_o in_o jam._n 2.16_o who_o bid_v some_o be_v clothe_v and_o warm_v but_o give_v nothing_o answ_n answ_n 1._o this_o place_n do_v not_o so_o much_o speak_v of_o the_o possession_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o the_o spiritual_a serviceablenesse_n of_o they_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v no_o possession_n of_o may_v yet_o serve_v for_o their_o soul_n good_a he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o mean_v what_o they_o have_v as_o what_o tend_v to_o their_o good_a 2._o if_o the_o godly_a have_v not_o all_o thing_n they_o will_v that_o want_n be_v good_a for_o they_o the_o want_n of_o any_o outward_a mercy_n may_v sometime_o be_v better_a than_o the_o have_v of_o they_o to_o lose_v blood_n when_o there_o be_v too_o much_o fullness_n be_v healthful_a so_o then_o complain_v not_o say_v i_o have_v not_o this_o or_o that_o good_a thing_n the_o not_o have_v it_o be_v good_a 3._o thou_o have_v what_o be_v best_a for_o thou_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o wise_a god_n order_v let_v this_o silence_n thou_o always_o these_o affliction_n these_o exercise_n these_o want_n be_v the_o best_a the_o wise_a great_a god_n of_o heaven_n do_v dispense_v they_o and_o they_o come_v from_o his_o hand_n 4._o thou_o have_v better_a thing_n than_o any_o earthly_a thing_n thou_o want_v thou_o have_v christ_n thou_o have_v a_o title_n to_o heaven_n and_o eternal_a glory_n
to_o come_v in_o this_o life_n they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o 1._o merciful_a and_o good_a thing_n or_o 2._o grievous_a and_o sad_a thing_n for_o god_n can_v quick_o turn_v a_o fair_a day_n into_o thunder_n and_o tempest_n job_n feel_v a_o sudden_a alteration_n upon_o himself_o which_o be_v from_o the_o rich_a in_o the_o east_n to_o become_v the_o poor_a in_o a_o moment_n now_o both_o these_o kind_n be_v the_o godly_a man_n mercy_n no_o evil_n that_o be_v true_o so_o can_v befall_v he_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o pursue_v these_o particular_n for_o that_o will_v coincide_v with_o the_o former_a matter_n i_o shall_v therefore_o treat_v of_o it_o in_o a_o more_o general_a way_n observe_v observe_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o come_v or_o may_v fall_v out_o hereafter_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n mercy_n and_o advantage_n this_o doctrine_n speak_v the_o height_n of_o happiness_n and_o comfort_n to_o the_o godly_a for_o there_o be_v no_o great_a temptation_n we_o be_v subject_a unto_o then_o to_o be_v torment_v about_o what_o may_v fall_v out_o hereafter_o though_o for_o the_o present_a it_o be_v never_o so_o well_o yet_o we_o forethink_v our_o possible_a misery_n as_o david_n one_o day_n i_o shall_v fall_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 27.1_o so_o that_o many_o time_n needless_a trouble_n about_o what_o be_v to_o come_v take_v away_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o present_a mercy_n we_o have_v but_o here_o we_o see_v the_o text_n give_v such_o a_o cordial_a to_o the_o godly_a that_o he_o may_v go_v and_o take_v his_o rest_n whole_o rely_v upon_o the_o lord_n for_o come_v what_o can_v come_v or_o will_v come_v nothing_o can_v come_v amiss_o it_o will_v be_v a_o mercy_n a_o advantage_n to_o he_o now_o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a i_o may_v prove_v à_fw-fr posteriori_fw-la from_o such_o sign_n and_o effect_n that_o do_v evident_o demonstrate_v the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v quiet_o to_o sit_v down_o with_o this_o conclusion_n though_o the_o lord_n only_o know_v what_o will_v come_v upon_o i_o yet_o i_o know_v it_o will_v be_v only_o for_o my_o good_a for_o first_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o the_o scripture_n command_v the_o godly_a to_o avoid_v all_o distrustful_a and_o distract_n care_v about_o what_o will_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v quiet_o compose_v himself_o commit_v all_o to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n who_o know_v all_o he_o have_v need_n of_o so_o that_o as_o little_a child_n be_v cheerful_a and_o play_v never_o trouble_v themselves_o how_o they_o shall_v subsist_v and_o what_o if_o such_o misery_n arise_v thus_o ought_v the_o godly_a matth._n 6.34_o take_v no_o thought_n for_o to_o morrow_n for_o the_o morrow_n shall_v take_v think_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o itself_o q.d._n god_n will_v then_o provide_v when_o other_o condition_n other_o exercise_n come_v do_v not_o thou_o distract_v thyself_o god_n will_v then_o upon_o any_o new_a trial_n or_o exercise_n come_v in_o upon_o thou_o to_o help_v and_o deliver_v see_v here_o then_o the_o bless_a estate_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n he_o be_v command_v to_o shut_v out_o all_o distrustful_a care_n for_o the_o future_a he_o be_v to_o cast_v his_o burden_n upon_o the_o lord_n whatsoever_o shall_v befall_v it_o will_v be_v well_o with_o he_o second_o they_o be_v to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o nothing_o shall_v fall_v out_o that_o can_v separate_v from_o god_n love_n and_o what_o a_o support_n be_v this_o rom._n 8._o paul_n there_o be_v triumph_v and_o that_o not_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o be_v justify_v what_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n shall_v thing_n present_v shall_v thing_n to_o come_v vers_fw-la 38._o be_v not_o this_o to_o bring_v the_o people_n of_o god_n up_o into_o the_o mount_n of_o transfiguration_n whatsoever_o shall_v befall_v thou_o before_o thou_o die_v yet_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v between_o god_n love_n and_o thou_o though_o it_o shall_v come_v about_o that_o no_o friend_n love_v thou_o none_o in_o the_o world_n will_v own_v thou_o yet_o god_n will_v own_v thou_o certain_o this_o may_v rejoice_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a if_o any_o thing_n hereafter_o may_v divide_v between_o god_n and_o thou_o may_v deprive_v thou_o of_o god_n and_o part_v thou_o from_o he_o then_o thou_o may_v tremble_v and_o quake_v fear_v the_o worst_a be_v not_o past_a but_o when_o all_o be_v thus_o provide_v aforehand_o that_o thou_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v in_o god_n love_n be_v thy_o estate_n never_o so_o disconsolate_a this_o may_v keep_v up_o thy_o heart_n three_o the_o godly_a concern_v all_o future_a thing_n may_v thus_o also_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o evil_a no_o temptation_n that_o shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o but_o he_o will_v give_v strength_n to_o bear_v and_o give_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v you_o have_v a_o text_n more_o precious_a than_o the_o gold_n of_o ophir_n to_o this_o purpose_n 1_o cor._n 10.13_o god_n be_v faithful_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o you_o be_v able_a but_o with_o the_o temptation_n will_v make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v do_v not_o this_o text_n speak_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o godly_a people_n oh_o they_o lie_v under_o sad_a temptation_n heavy_a exercise_n be_v upon_o they_o such_o as_o the_o world_n know_v not_o and_o they_o be_v afraid_a these_o will_v overwhelm_v they_o they_o shall_v never_o get_v out_o it_o will_v undo_v they_o but_o what_o say_v the_o text_n god_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o measure_n and_o he_o will_v make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v see_v then_o thy_o fear_n thy_o unbelief_n make_v thou_o go_v contrary_a to_o the_o text._n thou_o say_v thou_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o god_n say_v i_o will_v lay_v no_o more_o upon_o thou_o than_o thou_o be_v able_a fear_n say_v i_o shall_v never_o escape_v this_o never_o overcome_v this_o faith_n say_v he_o will_v make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v now_o whether_o will_v thou_o believe_v god_n or_o thy_o own_o fearful_a heart_n oh_o then_o let_v the_o godly_a that_o be_v tempt_v and_o lie_v in_o deep_a water_n that_o be_v like_o ionas_n swallow_v up_o in_o the_o whale_n belly_n take_v this_o text_n and_o hide_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n so_o they_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o will_v be_v to_o come_v four_o for_o thing_n to_o come_v they_o have_v this_o promise_n that_o in_o all_o outward_a thing_n god_n will_v never_o leave_v they_o nor_o forsake_v they_o thus_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v they_o for_o they_o have_v this_o promise_n and_o heb._n 13.5_o the_o apostle_n urge_v this_o against_o covetousness_n and_o to_o be_v content_a with_o what_o they_o have_v god_n will_v never_o leave_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o now_o this_o temptation_n many_o time_n trouble_v at_o least_o some_o godly_a person_n they_o be_v afraid_a they_o or_o their_o posterity_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o want_n they_o fear_v poverty_n may_v come_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o arm_a man_n especial_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v in_o old_a age_n if_o god_n shall_v let_v they_o live_v till_o they_o shall_v lose_v their_o sight_n or_o their_o limb_n or_o their_o part_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o they_o to_o live_v a_o burden_n to_o themselves_o or_o other_o aristotle_n have_v a_o wicked_a position_n that_o all_o decrepit_a old_a man_n shall_v be_v throw_v down_o a_o steep_a hill_n headlong_o and_o be_v kill_v as_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o a_o commonwealth_n old_a people_n be_v many_o time_n a_o burden_n to_o wicked_a young_a people_n therefore_o god_n command_v we_o not_o to_o despise_v our_o mother_n when_o she_o be_v old_a prov._n 23.22_o now_o we_o shall_v see_v david_n himself_o tempt_v about_o his_o old_a age_n psal_n 71.19_o when_o i_o be_o old_a and_o gray_a head_a forsake_v i_o not_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o want_v or_o strait_n especial_o what_o decay_v of_o grace_n the_o godly_a may_v fear_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o same_o vigour_n and_o strength_n not_o the_o same_o memory_n and_o judgement_n but_o the_o scripture_n give_v a_o good_a promise_n psal_n 92.14_o they_o shall_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n in_o old_a age_n so_o isa_n 46.4_o to_o your_o old_a age_n i_o be_o he_o and_o even_o to_o hoary_a hair_n i_o will_v carry_v thou_o he_o will_v have_v as_o much_o care_n of_o thou_o as_o a_o mother_n of_o a_o child_n in_o her_o arm_n well_o then_o you_o see_v in_o that_o god_n have_v say_v he_o will_v never_o leave_v or_o forsake_v we_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v poverty_n want_n the_o disease_n and_o misery_n of_o old_a age_n for_o these_o thing_n be_v we_o five_o the_o people_n of_o god_n may_v be_v persuade_v of_o their_o
our_o own_o will_n our_o own_o advantage_n it_o shall_v shame_v we_o to_o follow_v such_o a_o christ_n to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o this_o christ_n how_o ill_o do_v such_o a_o head_n and_o such_o member_n agree_v together_o think_v of_o christ_n when_o pride_n vainglory_n self-will_n stir_v in_o thou_o if_o christ_n have_v be_v thus_o there_o have_v be_v no_o pardon_n no_o salvation_n for_o i_o finis_fw-la the_o godly_a man_n choice_n compare_v with_o the_o natural_a man_n and_o find_v to_o be_v incomparable_o the_o best_a preach_v from_o psalm_n 4_o verse_n 6_o 7_o 8._o and_o now_o publish_v by_o anthony_n burgess_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sutton-coldfield_n london_n print_v by_o abraham_n miller_n for_o thomas_n underhill_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o anchor_n and_o bible_n in_o paul_n churchyard_n m._n dc_o lix_n to_o the_o reader_n the_o psalm_n be_v note_v to_o have_v this_o peculiar_a excellency_n in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o experimental_a breathe_n of_o a_o gracious_a heart_n exercise_v under_o various_a temptation_n so_o that_o what_o be_v doctrinal_o and_o in_o the_o idea_n deliver_v in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v here_o practical_o and_o in_o subjecto_fw-la visible_o express_v so_o that_o none_o can_v understand_v they_o unless_o he_o bring_v the_o same_o spirit_n with_o he_o that_o breathe_v in_o david_n while_o he_o compose_v they_o this_o be_v david_n spiritual_a harp_n drive_v away_o all_o the_o evil_a and_o malignant_a affection_n that_o may_v at_o any_o time_n rise_v up_o in_o we_o that_o poetical_a one_o of_o orpheus_n though_o say_v to_o tame_a beast_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o this_o now_o as_o face_n answer_v face_n so_o do_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n answer_n david_n in_o his_o respective_a agony_n of_o his_o soul_n when_o grace_n work_v when_o corruption_n work_v he_o do_v observe_v by_o the_o like_a transaction_n in_o his_o own_o soul_n among_o other_o particular_n i_o have_v select_v this_o 4_o psalm_n in_o the_o three_o last_o verse_n to_o discourse_n upon_o because_o therein_o be_v declare_v what_o be_v the_o choice_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n what_o be_v his_o summum_fw-la bonum_fw-la and_o what_o of_o a_o godly_a man_n wherein_o i_o be_o more_o large_a so_o that_o a_o heavenly_a heart_n and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n be_v chief_o the_o subject_a of_o this_o treatise_n sublime_a and_o high_a matter_n comparative_o to_o our_o dull_a lumpish_a and_o heavy_a heart_n for_o this_o end_n do_v god_n many_o time_n exercise_v his_o people_n with_o sad_a temptation_n that_o they_o may_v experimental_o say_v god_n love_a kindness_n be_v better_a than_o life_n for_o job_n and_o many_o other_o have_v live_v yet_o desire_v death_n the_o damn_a in_o hell_n live_v yet_o annihilation_n will_v be_v welcome_a to_o they_o so_o that_o he_o only_o live_v who_o enjoy_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o great_a worldly_a pleasure_n they_o be_v but_o like_o the_o fancy_n of_o distract_a man_n so_o that_o as_o some_o who_o have_v persuade_v themselves_o in_o such_o please_a delight_n and_o apprehend_v themselves_o master_n of_o such_o great_a revenue_n when_o cure_v of_o this_o delirium_fw-la by_o physician_n have_v be_v displease_v thereat_o say_v they_o never_o enjoy_v a_o better_a time_n then_o under_o those_o delude_a imagination_n such_o a_o folly_n and_o dream_n do_v possess_v all_o natural_a man_n while_o destitute_a of_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v awaken_v out_o of_o this_o dream_n and_o to_o be_v cure_v of_o this_o folly_n but_o with_o david_n we_o call_v upon_o thou_o to_o taste_v and_o see_v how_o good_a god_n be_v and_o then_o thou_o will_v cry_v out_o with_o austin_n sero_fw-la te_fw-la amavi_fw-la domine_fw-la even_o mourn_v because_o thou_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o he_o any_o soon_o and_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v quicken_v up_o hereunto_o be_v diligent_a in_o meditate_v of_o these_o holy_a psalm_n wherein_o be_v contain_v flamnigera_fw-mi theologia_n for_o hereby_o thou_o will_v find_v thyself_o as_o it_o be_v in_o eliahs_n fiery_a chariot_n carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n anthony_n burgess_n march_n 18._o 1658._o the_o natural_a man_n choice_n show_v that_o no_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v ascend_v any_o high_a in_o his_o choice_n and_o desire_n than_o the_o creature_n psalm_n 4.6_o there_o be_v many_o that_o say_v who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a the_o divine_a psalmist_n at_o the_o second_o verse_n do_v in_o a_o pathetical_a manner_n reprove_v all_o his_o ungodly_a enemy_n who_o be_v also_o enemy_n to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o he_o and_o his_o reproof_n be_v full_a of_o reason_v as_o 1._o that_o all_o the_o earthly_a good_a and_o advantage_n they_o seek_v after_o be_v a_o vanity_n it_o be_v a_o lie_n they_o will_v never_o find_v it_o to_o be_v that_o to_o they_o which_o they_o expect_v they_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n which_o be_v nigrum_fw-la nihil_fw-la a_o black_a nothing_o 2._o their_o attempt_n against_o the_o godly_a will_v be_v frustrate_v for_o god_n set_v a_o part_n the_o godly_a man_n for_o himself_o this_o be_v his_o treasure_n this_o be_v his_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n which_o he_o will_v certain_o defend_v thereupon_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o repentance_n which_o be_v accomplish_v by_o commune_v with_o their_o own_o heart_n on_o their_o bed_n they_o be_v to_o take_v the_o solemne_v and_o most_o serious_a time_n to_o consider_v of_o their_o way_n for_o all_o their_o wickedness_n be_v commit_v for_o want_v of_o consideration_n intellectus_fw-la cogitabundus_fw-la be_v principium_fw-la omnis_fw-la boni_fw-la oh_o consider_v this_o you_o that_o forget_v god_n this_o repentance_n presuppose_v he_o press_v two_o duty_n 1._o to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o righteousness_n to_o be_v diligent_a in_o the_o worship_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o that_o with_o a_o holy_a and_o godly_a cleanse_n of_o their_o life_n from_o all_o impiety_n 2._o to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o the_o lord_n even_o bellarmine_n on_o this_o place_n confess_v this_o be_v add_v that_o they_o may_v not_o presume_v in_o their_o own_o work_n or_o in_o their_o best_a religious_a performance_n but_o must_v rest_v their_o soul_n whole_o on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n now_o the_o psalmist_n have_v give_v this_o spiritual_a counsel_n he_o inform_v we_o of_o two_o different_a disposition_n or_o two_o sort_n of_o man_n for_o although_o there_o be_v various_a interpretation_n and_o conjecture_n about_o the_o place_n yet_o i_o pitch_v on_o that_o as_o most_o genuine_a the_o first_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o carnal_a disposition_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o every_o unregenerate_a man_n who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a they_o despise_v the_o counsel_n give_v they_o think_v that_o these_o religious_a duty_n be_v for_o no_o good_a at_o all_o therefore_o they_o manifest_v their_o desire_n after_o some_o terrene_a and_o worldly_a happiness_n second_o there_o be_v the_o charectar_n of_o a_o gracious_a and_o regenerate_a man_n lord_n lift_v thou_o up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o thus_o this_o text_n like_o rebecca_n womb_n have_v a_o profane_a esau_n who_o esteem_v a_o morsel_n of_o meat_n above_o his_o birthright_n and_o a_o holy_a jacob_n strive_v within_o it_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o first_o wherein_o you_o have_v represent_v what_o be_v the_o heart-wish_a and_o soul_n desire_v of_o every_o man_n till_o sanctify_v even_o to_o go_v no_o high_o then_o to_o have_v happiness_n in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o some_o creature_n and_o not_o god_n himself_o so_o that_o in_o the_o former_a part_n you_o may_v observe_v 1._o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o have_v this_o distemper_a palate_n many_o even_o every_o man_n till_o by_o regeneration_n he_o be_v enable_v to_o set_v his_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o 2._o their_o ardent_a affection_n they_o say_v that_o be_v both_o internal_o in_o their_o affection_n and_o desire_n as_o the_o fool_n say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n and_o also_o with_o the_o tongue_n external_o manifest_v this_o corrupt_a heart_n within_o 3._o there_o be_v the_o object_n which_o their_o whole_a heart_n be_v carry_v out_o unto_o to_o show_v we_o any_o good_a that_o be_v any_o good_a or_o content_a of_o the_o creature_n for_o it_o be_v speak_v opposite_o to_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v desire_v the_o devil_n offer_v which_o he_o make_v to_o christ_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v show_v they_o and_o they_o will_v worship_v the_o devil_n and_o commit_v any_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v it_o and_o although_o its_o true_a that_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v but_o a_o show_n the_o devil_n do_v
fill_v with_o god_n three_o those_o can_v only_o desire_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n that_o do_v renounce_v their_o own_o righteousness_n that_o do_v not_o justify_v themselves_o or_o put_v confidence_n in_o their_o own_o righteousness_n common_o there_o be_v none_o more_o ignorant_a and_o stupid_a about_o this_o glorious_a privilege_n than_o the_o civil_a pharisaical_a and_o formal_a man_n who_o place_v all_o their_o trust_n in_o the_o good_a work_n they_o do_v those_o affection_n and_o that_o hope_v which_o shall_v be_v place_v on_o god_n they_o be_v apt_a to_o put_v upon_o their_o own_o seem_a righteousness_n hence_o mat._n 5.3_o our_o saviour_n pronounce_v those_o bless_a that_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o virgin_n mary_n magnify_v god_n in_o her_o song_n luk._n 1.53_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o hungry_a with_o good_a thing_n and_o the_o rich_a he_o have_v send_v empty_a away_o not_o only_o the_o profane_a man_n who_o trample_v this_o pearl_n under_o his_o foot_n but_o even_o the_o formal_a civil_a man_n be_v a_o great_a stranger_n to_o this_o petition_n this_o favour_n be_v whole_o a_o strange_a thing_n to_o he_o and_o all_o because_o he_o be_v full_a of_o himself_o he_o make_v his_o good_a heart_n his_o good_a work_n a_o god_n a_o saviour_n to_o he_o and_o so_o no_o wonder_n if_o he_o seek_v not_o up_o to_o heaven_n and_o desire_v light_a from_o thence_o yea_o in_o godly_a man_n it_o be_v thus_o that_o the_o more_o debase_v and_o self_n empty_v they_o be_v the_o more_o be_v their_o fellowship_n with_o god_n the_o more_o do_v they_o place_v their_o happiness_n in_o behold_v of_o he_o as_o you_o see_v it_o be_v with_o paul_n who_o labour_v more_o than_o he_o yet_o who_o undervalue_v all_o his_o grace_n more_o than_o ●e_n and_o all_o this_o be_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v whole_o exalt_v oh_o then_o know_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v so_o much_o bolt_n out_o this_o glorious_a light_n from_o shine_v into_o thou_o as_o self-confidence_n as_o self-righteousnesse_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o god_n do_v so_o many_o time_n withdraw_v his_o gracious_a presence_n from_o his_o own_o child_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a and_o can_v see_v any_o grace_n and_o the_o least_o spark_n of_o heavenly_a fire_n within_o themselves_o and_o all_o because_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v lift_v up_o they_o must_v have_v these_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n else_o they_o will_v depend_v too_o much_o upon_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o their_o own_o grace_n and_o when_o they_o have_v be_v thus_o humble_v then_o at_o last_o they_o come_v to_o esteem_v god_n favour_n more_o than_o ever_o as_o paul_n passenger_n after_o a_o stormy_a black_a time_n rejoice_v to_o see_v the_o sun_n more_o than_o ever_o four_o such_o only_o can_v esteem_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n who_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o a_o heavenly_a people_n who_o have_v the_o holy_a image_n of_o god_n repair_v in_o they_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v earthly_a and_o speak_v earthly_a thing_n joh._n 3._o but_o he_o that_o be_v of_o heaven_n be_v heavenly_a such_o as_o we_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o our_o spiritual_a constitution_n such_o be_v our_o operation_n and_o our_o inclination_n no_o wonder_n then_o the_o natural_a man_n desire_v not_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v in_o a_o corrupt_a and_o sinful_a estate_n and_o so_o can_v desire_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v suitable_a thereunto_o whereas_o on_o the_o otherside_n he_o that_o be_v make_v heavenly_a he_o that_o have_v a_o holy_a frame_n of_o heart_n the_o motion_n of_o his_o soul_n ascend_v upward_o still_o as_o you_o see_v by_o david_n how_o often_o do_v he_o profess_v the_o breathe_n the_o long_n and_o thirsting_n of_o his_o soul_n after_o god_n he_o cry_v aloud_o that_o he_o have_v nothing_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o god_n he_o make_v god_n his_o portion_n his_o shepherd_n his_o refuge_n his_o hope_n his_o all_o thing_n unto_o he_o whence_o be_v david_n thus_o carry_v out_o to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n but_o because_o of_o a_o heavenly_a heart_n within_o there_o can_v not_o come_v such_o sweet_a fragrant_a smell_n but_o because_o his_o heart_n be_v like_o a_o spiritual_a garden_n you_o see_v all_o like_a desire_v and_o delight_n in_o that_o which_o be_v like_a and_o if_o a_o godly_a man_n love_n to_o see_v the_o face_n and_o have_v the_o company_n of_o another_o godly_a man_n how_o much_o more_o must_v he_o desire_v god_n himself_o oh_o then_o complain_v of_o that_o heavy_a lumpish_a earthly_a heart_n of_o thou_o that_o do_v not_o often_o say_v my_o heart_n break_v for_o the_o longing_n after_o god_n at_o all_o time_n as_o the_o hart_n desire_v the_o water_n so_o pant_v my_o soul_n after_o thou_o o_o god_n if_o thou_o complain_v that_o thou_o have_v affection_n for_o every_o thing_n but_o god_n thy_o heart_n be_v take_v with_o every_o comfort_n but_o he_o oh_o bewail_v this_o dull_a and_o sinful_a frame_n thou_o want_v heavenlynesse_n thy_o heart_n and_o conversation_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n five_o such_o only_a prey_n for_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n as_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o be_v affect_v with_o thing_n as_o reveal_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n live_v whole_o by_o sense_n and_o upon_o worldly_a principle_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n as_o a_o worm_n that_o crawl_v on_o the_o ground_n to_o delight_v in_o the_o sun_n faith_n be_v that_o noble_a grace_n which_o be_v like_a wing_n to_o the_o soul_n to_o make_v it_o fly_v up_o to_o heaven_n we_o see_v it_o in_o paul_n what_o be_v that_o which_o so_o raise_v up_o his_o heart_n to_o christ_n what_o be_v that_o which_o make_v he_o to_o sit_v with_o christ_n in_o heavenly_a place_n what_o be_v that_o which_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o to_o every_o believer_n but_o faith_n we_o be_v all_o lame_a cripple_n till_o faith_n heal_v we_o and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o all_o worldly_a man_n have_v no_o more_o sense_n of_o this_o divine_a benefit_n than_o the_o very_a bruit_n beast_n because_o they_o be_v whole_o stranger_n to_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o bodily_a eye_n that_o can_v see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n neither_o have_v god_n any_o bodily_a face_n or_o eye_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v whole_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o as_o the_o deaf_a ear_n can_v be_v affect_v with_o melodious_a music_n so_o neither_o can_v a_o natural_a heart_n discern_v of_o this_o light_n of_o god_n favour_n oh_o then_o acquaint_v thyself_o with_o faith_n this_o be_v a_o prospective-glass_n that_o will_v discover_v such_o object_n to_o thou_o that_o of_o thyself_o thou_o can_v not_o apprehend_v faith_n make_v we_o to_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n favour_n we_o be_v stark_o blind_a till_o faith_n open_v our_o eye_n six_o such_o only_o can_v esteem_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n who_o have_v have_v the_o experience_n of_o the_o sweetness_n and_o excellency_n of_o it_o a_o man_n that_o have_v not_o taste_v honey_n know_v not_o how_o sweet_a it_o be_v therefore_o david_n call_v upon_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n to_o taste_v and_o see_v how_o good_a god_n be_v if_o the_o natural_a man_n ever_o have_v any_o experimental_a feel_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o his_o love_n than_o he_o will_v quick_o have_v another_o heart_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n then_o he_o will_v sell_v all_o to_o get_v this_o pearl_n but_o all_o the_o while_n man_n be_v unregenerate_a they_o know_v no_o other_o good_a then_o that_o of_o the_o creature_n it_o have_v never_o enter_v into_o their_o heart_n to_o conceive_v what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v the_o face_n of_o god_n shine_v upon_o his_o people_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o invitation_n and_o allurement_n be_v in_o vain_a until_o god_n be_v please_v to_o come_v into_o the_o soul_n and_o discover_v his_o sweetness_n and_o consolation_n to_o he_o the_o experience_a christian_a that_o have_v often_o drink_v of_o this_o wine_n still_o remain_v thirsty_a and_o desirous_a after_o more_o for_o whereas_o the_o have_v of_o earthly_a thing_n do_v satiate_v and_o at_o last_o nauseate_n a_o man_n heart_n so_o that_o he_o have_v enough_o in_o this_o heavenly_a enjoyment_n of_o god_n he_o never_o have_v enough_o but_o the_o more_o he_o have_v taste_v of_o it_o the_o more_o hungry_a he_o be_v still_o always_o pray_v with_o david_n oh_o when_o will_v he_o come_v to_o i_o when_o those_o in_o the_o canticle_n ask_v the_o church_n which_o be_v so_o ravish_v with_o christ_n prefer_v he_o above_o ten_o thousand_o what_o be_v thy_o beloved_a more_o than_o other_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n they_o
have_v never_o see_v he_o they_o have_v never_o know_v he_o if_o they_o have_v they_o will_v have_v be_v enammour_v with_o he_o as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o when_o natural_a man_n wonder_v say_v why_o do_v these_o man_n thus_o pray_v thus_o mourn_v thus_o long_o after_o god_n why_o be_v it_o that_o they_o be_v never_o satisfy_v but_o in_o he_o it_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o this_o experimental_a work_n have_v never_o be_v upon_o thy_o heart_n if_o it_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v will_v fall_v on_o thou_o also_o thou_o will_v admire_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o they_o seven_o such_o only_o can_v desire_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o they_o it_o be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o soul_n go_v upward_o we_o be_v like_o that_o man_n bow_v down_o that_o christ_n heal_v till_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n thus_o raise_v we_o up_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o in_o fire_n which_o denoteh_a the_o actiuty_n of_o it_o when_o fire_n assimilate_v any_o thing_n into_o itself_o it_o make_v it_o ascend_v upward_o and_o thus_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n convert_v and_o sanctify_v a_o man_n soul_n it_o give_v it_o a_o contrary_a motion_n to_o what_o it_o have_v before_o then_o it_o make_v provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n than_o it_o mind_v earthly_a thing_n but_o now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v raise_v it_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n that_o as_o you_o see_v it_o be_v the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n which_o will_v make_v these_o body_n that_o be_v now_o corruptible_a heavy_a and_o press_v downward_o to_o be_v immortal_a spiritual_a and_o so_o agile_a that_o they_o shall_v meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n even_o these_o body_n will_v be_v so_o transform_v that_o they_o shall_v move_v in_o the_o air_n like_o bird_n no_o wonder_n then_o if_o god_n spirit_n be_v able_a so_o to_o work_v upon_o our_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v constant_o incline_v to_o god_n and_o indeed_o none_o be_v to_o rest_v till_o they_o find_v god_n thus_o mighty_o prevail_v upon_o they_o this_o excellent_a frame_n may_v be_v give_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v promise_v to_o such_o as_o ask_v for_o it_o mat_n 6._o especial_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o adopt_v enab●ling_v we_o to_o call_v god_n father_n rebuke_v legal_a slavish_a fear_n and_o fill_v we_o with_o a_o filial_a and_o evangelical_a frame_n of_o heart_n eight_o therefore_o another_o property_n of_o such_o who_o do_v thus_o high_o esteem_v god_n favour_n be_v that_o they_o be_v diligent_a in_o prayer_n and_o fervent_a in_o approach_n to_o god_n prayer_n be_v the_o ascend_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o god_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o eye_n lift_v up_o argue_v what_o the_o heart_n shall_v be_v now_o prayer_n be_v of_o this_o excellent_a advantage_n if_o spiritual_o and_o fervent_o perform_v that_o it_o carry_v up_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o thereby_o god_n also_o manifest_v his_o love_a kindness_n to_o his_o people_n even_o as_o moses_n upon_o his_o communion_n with_o god_n have_v his_o face_n shine_v so_o glorious_o that_o the_o people_n can_v not_o behold_v it_o and_o christ_n himself_o upon_o prayer_n have_v his_o countenance_n change_v that_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v like_o the_o sun_n and_o his_o garment_n be_v white_a as_o snow_n so_o that_o such_o who_o esteem_v of_o god_n favour_n they_o be_v instant_a in_o prayer_n they_o perform_v that_o duty_n with_o watch_v and_o attend_v thereunto_o which_o if_o so_o discharge_v than_o many_o consolation_n many_o irradiation_n of_o his_o favour_n be_v communicate_v to_o they_o so_o that_o a_o man_n diligent_a in_o prayer_n be_v like_o the_o tree_n by_o the_o water_n side_n who_o leaf_n will_v never_o fade_v hence_o we_o have_v that_o encouragement_n no_o man_n seek_v god_n face_n in_o vain_a and_o no_o soon_o do_v god_n command_v this_o but_o immediate_o david_n heart_n yield_v to_o it_o psal_n 7.8_o thy_o face_n lord_n will_v i_o seek_v we_o can_v have_v it_o without_o seek_v for_o it_o as_o that_o which_o be_v most_o precious_a and_o a_o very_a infinite_a treasure_n and_o withal_o you_o see_v the_o encouragement_n god_n bespeak_v it_o he_o say_v seek_v you_o my_o face_n last_o such_o as_o prize_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n they_o walk_v close_o with_o god_n and_o keep_v up_o strict_a communion_n with_o he_o slothful_a and_o careless_a walk_n will_v never_o be_v bless_v with_o this_o glorious_a advantage_n you_o read_v the_o church_n be_v but_o once_o careless_a and_o negligent_a when_o christ_n proffer_v himself_o and_o immediate_o christ_n withdraw_v so_o that_o though_o she_o run_v up_o and_o down_o much_o perplex_v to_o see_v the_o face_n of_o she_o belove_v again_o yet_o it_o cost_v her_o dear_a ere_o she_o can_v obtain_v it_o david_n begin_v to_o have_v but_o some_o proud_a and_o presumptuous_a thought_n psal_n 301.7_o and_o god_n bid_v his_o face_n and_o then_o he_o be_v trouble_v you_o see_v a_o little_a thing_n a_o word_n a_o thought_n may_v do_v it_o therefore_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v it_o they_o walk_v circumspect_o lest_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v make_v he_o angry_a with_o they_o use_v 1_o of_o exhortation_n to_o god_n child_n to_o keep_v up_o a_o tender_a mollify_v heart_n to_o take_v no_o rest_n till_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n shine_v upon_o thou_o let_v not_o lust_n passion_n or_o any_o thing_n be_v a_o eclipse_n between_o this_o glorious_a sun_n and_o you_o how_o can_v you_o live_v without_o this_o may_v not_o the_o devil_n come_v with_o seven_o more_o torment_v devil_n then_o ever_o if_o thou_o provoke_v god_n to_o withdraw_v his_o gracious_a presence_n to_o who_o be_v woe_n to_o who_o be_v sad_a terror_n and_o perplexity_n of_o spirit_n but_o to_o such_o who_o cry_v out_o god_n frown_v on_o they_o oh_o they_o feel_v his_o anger_n consume_v of_o they_o use_v 2._o of_o admonition_n to_o natural_a and_o unregenerate_a man_n to_o know_v there_o be_v a_o better_a good_a than_o ever_o yet_o they_o taste_v oh_o that_o thou_o can_v desire_v god_n as_o thou_o do_v wealth_n and_o pleasure_n be_v not_o the_o pleasant_a smile_a face_n of_o some_o great_a potentate_n a_o revive_n to_o thou_o what_o endeavour_n for_o the_o favour_n of_o a_o great_a man_n who_o yet_o be_v mortal_a will_v not_o this_o condemn_v thou_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n oh_o how_o will_v the_o face_n of_o god_n be_v then_o esteem_v of_o a_o consideration_n of_o some_o false_a ground_n of_o a_o persuasion_n of_o god_n love_n we_o have_v declare_v already_o the_o character_n of_o such_o who_o can_v true_o esteem_v the_o light_n of_o god_n favour_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o condition_n of_o such_o who_o be_v mistake_v herein_o and_o take_v that_o for_o god_n favour_n which_o be_v not_o and_o first_o there_o be_v the_o rich_a earthly_a or_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n riches_n he_o who_o abound_v in_o all_o prosperity_n and_o need_v nothing_o this_o man_n think_v that_o god_n face_n be_v towards_o he_o in_o mercy_n they_o gather_v from_o all_o the_o mercy_n they_o enjoy_v that_o therefore_o god_n love_v they_o but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a mistake_n for_o 1._o in_o the_o scripture_n we_o read_v that_o chastisement_n and_o affliction_n be_v sometime_o a_o argument_n of_o god_n love_n and_o that_o god_n be_v never_o more_o angry_a then_o when_o he_o let_v a_o man_n way_n be_v smooth_a and_o prosperous_a as_o it_o be_v with_o moab_n because_o he_o be_v not_o move_v often_o therefore_o he_o be_v settle_v upon_o the_o lees._n and_o thus_o in_o hosea_n when_o god_n be_v angry_a in_o the_o high_a manner_n than_o he_o threaten_v he_o will_v not_o punish_v their_o son_n or_o daughter_n any_o more_o hos_fw-la 4.14_o they_o therefore_o have_v little_a cause_n to_o boast_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o afflict_v as_o other_o man_n they_o be_v not_o in_o such_o bond_n as_o other_o be_v for_o david_n psal_n 73.6_o do_v of_o old_a observe_v this_o that_o whereas_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o world_n have_v all_o encouragement_n they_o have_v all_o temporal_a increase_n yet_o the_o godly_a be_v bow_v down_o all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o that_o in_o those_o time_n when_o promise_n of_o temporal_a abundance_n be_v in_o a_o large_a way_n propose_v to_o they_o if_o then_o the_o godly_a man_n have_v this_o measure_n in_o the_o old_a testamant_n no_o wonder_n if_o he_o meet_v with_o it_o much_o more_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o tribulation_n be_v make_v the_o red_a sea_n to_o go_v through_o into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n hence_o the_o apostle_n do_v
direct_o argue_v from_o god_n love_n to_o chastisement_n heb._n 12.6_o which_o be_v again_o mention_v rom._n 3.19_o insomuch_o that_o thou_o who_o art_n never_o afflict_v haste_v great_a cause_n to_o fear_v lest_o god_n wrath_n be_v upon_o thou_o the_o physician_n administer_v no_o physic_n to_o such_o who_o be_v incurable_a oh_o the_o wonderful_a and_o bless_a effect_n which_o the_o godly_a find_v by_o affliction_n when_o sanctify_v do_v not_o david_n say_v before_o he_o be_v afflict_v he_o go_v astray_o psal_n 119.67_o 2._o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o these_o temporal_a mercy_n thou_o abounde_v with_o come_v from_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n yet_o it_o be_v only_o in_o temporal_a thing_n if_o we_o do_v suppose_v that_o they_o from_o god_n love_n to_o thou_o yet_o this_o be_v but_o a_o common_a and_o general_a love_n it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o make_v to_o thy_o peculiar_a happiness_n neither_o do_v it_o tend_v to_o the_o special_a favour_n of_o god_n it_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o god_n from_o a_o common_a love_n to_o man_n who_o have_v be_v just_a and_o diligent_a in_o their_o way_n may_v bestow_v some_o outward_a mercy_n as_o a_o temporal_a reward_n thus_o austin_n think_v the_o roman_n have_v that_o great_a dominion_n give_v they_o because_o of_o their_o justice_n and_o so_o the_o scripture_n say_v a_o diligent_a hand_n make_v rich_a prov._n 10.4_o but_o what_o be_v this_o common_a love_n without_o a_o special_a what_o be_v it_o for_o god_n so_o to_o love_v thou_o as_o to_o make_v thou_o strong_a healthy_a wealthy_a and_o not_o to_o give_v christ_n and_o heaven_n to_o thou_o oh_o therefore_o rest_v not_o in_o the_o enjoy_n of_o these_o outward_a mercy_n but_o look_v to_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o if_o thou_o have_v grace_n pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o christ_n thou_o can_v not_o be_v damn_v but_o if_o thou_o have_v the_o great_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n thou_o may_v have_v also_o the_o great_a torment_n of_o hell_n hereafter_o as_o ishmael_n have_v of_o abraham_n some_o rich_a gift_n but_o not_o the_o inheritance_n as_o luther_n say_v of_o the_o great_a turkish_a empire_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n it_o be_v but_o mica_fw-la canis_fw-la a_o crumb_n that_o the_o dog_n may_v have_v but_o not_o the_o child_n bread_n 3._o let_v it_o be_v give_v to_o wicked_a man_n thus_o from_o a_o common_a love_n yet_o it_o be_v withal_o from_o god_n anger_n and_o hatred_n if_o you_o do_v regard_v they_o in_o a_o spiritual_a consideration_n for_o they_o be_v not_o sanctify_v to_o they_o they_o be_v not_o thereby_o make_v more_o holy_a or_o draw_v near_o to_o god_n they_o do_v become_v snare_n and_o occasion_n of_o sin_n to_o they_o so_o that_o they_o will_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n even_o curse_v the_o day_n that_o ever_o they_o have_v such_o abundance_n they_o will_v cry_v out_o oh_o that_o they_o have_v be_v poor_a miserable_a deform_v that_o they_o have_v be_v under_o any_o calamity_n then_o that_o they_o have_v such_o abundance_n for_o that_o have_v make_v hell_n seven_o time_n hot_a that_o have_v be_v like_o oil_n pour_v into_o the_o flame_n which_o have_v make_v the_o fire_n burn_v more_o terrible_o that_o which_o solomon_n observe_v of_o wealth_n eccl._n 5.13_o be_v true_a of_o all_o other_o outward_a mercy_n beauty_n strength_n honour_n how_o often_o be_v they_o give_v to_o the_o hurt_n of_o they_o that_o have_v they_o thus_o david_n imprecation_n be_v fulfil_v in_o they_o let_v their_o table_n become_v a_o snare_n unto_o they_o as_o too_o much_o blood_n endanger_v the_o body_n especial_o these_o outward_a mercy_n be_v sure_a to_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o they_o because_o they_o hinder_v and_o oppose_v all_o those_o christian_a qualification_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o every_o disciple_n of_o christ_n thus_o it_o be_v require_v that_o a_o man_n must_v love_v christ_n more_o than_o father_n or_o mother_n or_o life_n itself_o that_o he_o must_v deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n all_o which_o can_v be_v because_o of_o immoderate_a love_n to_o these_o outward_a mercy_n this_o be_v the_o camel_n bunch_n this_o be_v that_o which_o choke_v the_o word_n the_o pharisee_n because_o they_o be_v covetous_a deride_v christ_n if_o then_o you_o comfort_v yourselves_o because_o god_n have_v give_v you_o all_o outward_a fullness_n examine_v how_o these_o be_v sanctify_v to_o you_o what_o spiritual_a effect_n do_v these_o mercy_n bring_v upon_o you_o do_v you_o not_o pray_v the_o worse_o hear_v the_o worse_a be_v not_o your_o heart_n the_o more_o distract_a and_o divide_v do_v not_o the_o earth_n make_v you_o forget_v heaven_n oh_o then_o be_v afraid_a and_o tremble_v at_o these_o thing_n rather_o than_o confident_o rejoice_v in_o they_o do_v not_o abraham_n tell_v dives_n he_o have_v receive_v good_a thing_n in_o this_o life_n but_o for_o eternity_n he_o be_v not_o to_o receive_v so_o much_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n pray_v unto_o god_n that_o all_o thy_o good_a thing_n be_v not_o give_v thou_o here_o and_o thou_o have_v nothing_o hereafter_o countenance_n a_o second_o sort_n of_o person_n who_o mistake_v about_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n be_v such_o who_o have_v a_o quiet_a untroubled_a and_o ease_v conscience_n they_o common_o argue_v thus_o god_n love_v they_o for_o they_o have_v no_o trouble_n in_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v no_o fear_n or_o disquietness_n in_o their_o soul_n but_o they_o put_v their_o whole_a trust_n in_o christ_n such_o as_o these_o that_o die_v as_o a_o lamb_n so_o people_n express_v it_o they_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o this_o be_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n they_o thank_v god_n god_n love_v they_o and_o they_o love_n god_n they_o never_o doubt_v of_o god_n love_n to_o they_o they_o be_v full_o assure_v of_o it_o thus_o they_o take_v a_o secure_a and_o sometime_o a_o scare_v conscience_n for_o that_o which_o be_v quiet_v and_o make_v peaceable_a through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o very_a many_o they_o do_v even_o rejoice_v in_o this_o that_o they_o never_o doubt_v they_o think_v the_o godly_a who_o have_v often_o fear_n and_o doubt_n who_o be_v in_o sad_a temptation_n to_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v for_o their_o wickedness_n they_o be_v so_o even_o as_o the_o wicked_a thought_n christ_n to_o be_v smite_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o that_o god_n do_v in_o such_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n bring_v he_o to_o that_o accurse_a death_n for_o his_o high_a impiety_n thus_o do_v the_o profane_a man_n of_o the_o world_n censure_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o godly_a who_o have_v many_o time_n sad_a dejection_n of_o spirit_n and_o walk_v without_o any_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n at_o all_o yea_o ready_a to_o cry_v out_o they_o be_v damn_v and_o that_o god_n have_v forsake_v they_o but_o to_o search_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o this_o disease_n which_o be_v epidemical_a first_o consider_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o stupid_a senseless_a conscience_n conscience_n and_o a_o serene_a conscience_n make_v so_o by_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n shine_v upon_o it_o this_o be_v not_o a_o quiet_v conscience_n by_o the_o promise_n and_o through_o christ_n but_o a_o stupefy_v one_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v a_o sear_a one_o that_o can_v feel_v that_o can_v apprehend_v it_o be_v with_o thou_o as_o mad_a man_n that_o conceit_n such_o and_o such_o great_a thing_n to_o themselves_o when_o alas_o it_o be_v for_o want_n of_o their_o wit_n and_o sobriety_n that_o they_o have_v such_o foolish_a imagination_n thus_o when_o thou_o presume_v of_o heaven_n and_o salvation_n oh_o thou_o be_v sure_a thou_o shall_v go_v thither_o whence_o be_v all_o this_o but_o because_o thou_o have_v no_o spiritual_a life_n or_o feel_n within_o thou_o oh_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o spiritual_a sense_n if_o thou_o do_v understand_v aright_o thou_o will_v quick_o cry_v out_o and_o tremble_v at_o that_o curse_a condition_n thou_o be_v in_o who_o be_v more_o abominable_a to_o god_n than_o the_o pharisee_n yet_o who_o justify_v themselves_o more_o who_o put_v more_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o work_v they_o do_v therefore_o do_v thou_o search_v into_o thy_o heart_n more_o whence_o come_v thou_o to_o be_v thus_o secure_a and_o confident_a be_v it_o not_o because_o thou_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n be_v it_o not_o because_o thou_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o as_o dead_a man_n can_v feel_v any_o pain_n or_o torment_n so_o neither_o can_v thou_o therefore_o if_o you_o see_v man_n that_o live_v wicked_o yet_o die_v peaceable_o and_o confident_o this_o be_v not_o the_o light_n of_o god_n favour_n upon_o they_o
sin_n provoke_v god_n to_o take_v it_o away_o all_o the_o world_n can_v give_v such_o a_o joy_n as_o this_o be_v therefore_o gal._n 5.22_o it_o be_v call_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o often_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hence_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o comforter_n and_o god_n be_v style_v two_o cor._n 1.3_o the_o god_n of_o all_o consolation_n because_o it_o be_v he_o alone_o that_o work_v it_o man_n may_v create_v the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o of_o themselves_o get_v such_o a_o joy_n as_o this_o hence_o the_o people_n of_o god_n walk_v many_o time_n mournful_o for_o the_o want_n of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o samaritan_n can_v put_v this_o oil_n into_o their_o wound_n david_n can_v always_o say_v god_n put_v such_o joy_n in_o his_o heart_n yea_o he_o profess_v the_o clean_a contrary_a sometime_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v bow_v down_o that_o he_o water_v his_o bed_n with_o tear_n and_o joh._n be_v almost_o like_o a_o damn_a man_n in_o hell_n but_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o desolateness_n we_o may_v speak_v hereafter_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o this_o demonstrate_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o our_o joy_n and_o that_o as_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n can_v make_v the_o sun_n arise_v in_o the_o morning_n do_v not_o god_n appoint_v it_o that_o natural_a course_n so_o neither_o be_v any_o able_a to_o bring_v this_o joy_n into_o their_o heart_n therefore_o in_o the_o second_o place_n the_o second_o discovery_n of_o this_o joy_n be_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o work_v it_o thou_o do_v put_v it_o into_o my_o heart_n that_o be_v a_o excellent_a expression_n it_o show_v what_o dominion_n and_o sovereignty_n god_n have_v over_o the_o heart_n he_o can_v as_o easy_o put_v joy_n into_o thy_o soul_n though_o afflict_a though_o tempt_v though_o grieve_v with_o sin_n as_o thou_o can_v pour_v wine_n into_o a_o bottle_n he_o can_v with_o a_o word_n command_v water_n to_o become_v wine_n so_o that_o as_o the_o orthodox_n maintain_v that_o god_n grace_n in_o convert_v the_o heart_n be_v irresistible_a it_o be_v insuperable_a the_o heart_n can_v resist_v it_o with_o final_a prevalency_n for_o à_fw-fr nullo_n duro_fw-la cord_n respicitur_fw-la quip_n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la datur_fw-la ut_fw-la tollat_fw-la cor_fw-la durum_fw-la so_o it_o be_v true_a also_o in_o spiritual_a joy_n the_o grieve_a heart_n the_o sad_a heart_n can_v reject_v it_o because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sad_a heart_n hence_o we_o read_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o martyr_n and_o other_o that_o they_o have_v rejoice_v under_o their_o tribulation_n more_o than_o their_o persecutor_n do_v under_o all_o their_o abundance_n how_o be_v this_o possible_a but_o that_o god_n do_v so_o fill_v their_o heart_n that_o no_o outward_a or_o inward_a misery_n can_v have_v any_o room_n there_o this_o shall_v teach_v the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o walk_v so_o exact_o that_o they_o may_v not_o on_o the_o contrary_n say_v god_n have_v put_v more_o bitterness_n into_o their_o heart_n than_o any_o can_v have_v in_o their_o worldly_a misery_n for_o as_o the_o joy_n of_o god_n be_v more_o than_o all_o earthly_a joy_n so_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o wrath_n cause_v more_o sorrow_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n than_o all_o outward_a calamity_n can_v do_v a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v three_o this_o joy_n which_o god_n put_v into_o our_o heart_n follow_v upon_o a_o true_a godly_a sorrow_n and_o mourning_n for_o sin_n all_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o heart_n which_o do_v not_o flow_v from_o humiliation_n and_o deep_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n it_o be_v but_o a_o blaze_n it_o be_v like_o the_o crackle_n of_o thorn_n and_o this_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o hypocrite_n who_o never_o have_v any_o true_a sound_a grace_n yet_o he_o may_v have_v some_o transitory_a joy_n so_o mat._n 13._o they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o joy_n and_o some_o rejoice_v in_o john_n baptist_n light_n but_o it_o be_v for_o a_o season_n only_o and_o thus_o many_o in_o some_o fit_n yea_o in_o some_o holy_a duty_n find_v a_o gladness_n and_o inward_a joy_n upon_o their_o heart_n but_o this_o never_o have_v a_o true_a sorrow_n go_v before_o before_o paul_n be_v admit_v into_o gospel_n joy_n he_o be_v strike_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o have_v a_o deep_a sense_n of_o his_o former_a guilt_n therefore_o the_o promise_n be_v bless_a be_v they_o that_o mourn_v for_o they_o shall_v rejoice_v mat._n 5._o therefore_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v concern_v affliction_n it_o be_v true_a also_o of_o godly_a sorrow_n they_o that_o sow_v in_o tear_n shall_v reap_v in_o joy_n many_o desire_v joy_n they_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v of_o a_o sermon_n that_o may_v cause_v gladness_n in_o their_o heart_n but_o then_o they_o can_v endure_v the_o preparatory_a unto_o it_o they_o do_v not_o love_v the_o law_n shall_v wound_v they_o before_o the_o gospel_n heal_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o heavenly_a joy_n it_o be_v a_o daughter_n to_o godly_a sorrow_n verus_fw-la paenitens_fw-la de_fw-la peccato_fw-la doler_n &_o de_fw-fr dolore_fw-la gaudet_fw-la and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o make_v godly_a joy_n so_o welcome_a and_o so_o precious_a because_o the_o heart_n be_v mourning_n and_o humble_v before_o think_v itself_o unworthy_a of_o any_o joy_n in_o the_o least_o manner_n though_o other_o may_v rejoice_v yet_o not_o they_o this_o then_o be_v the_o method_n god_n take_v first_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n of_o supplication_n and_o mourning_n then_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n of_o joy_n and_o consolation_n four_o this_o joy_n which_o god_n put_v in_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v from_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a motive_n therefore_o the_o duty_n be_v so_o often_o call_v for_o to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v call_v joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o arise_v from_o god_n favour_n from_o gospel-priviledge_n because_o god_n be_v reconcile_v because_o sin_n be_v pardon_v because_o we_o be_v justifica_fw-la through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o joy_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n and_o of_o a_o natural_a man_n differ_v as_o much_o as_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o what_o make_v thou_o rejoice_v at_o any_o time_n be_v it_o some_o worldly_a pleasure_n be_v it_o not_o some_o earthly_a content_n be_v it_o not_o because_o such_o and_o such_o earthly_a advantage_n befall_v thou_o thy_o heart_n be_v never_o cheerful_a and_o merry_a but_o from_o such_o consideration_n now_o how_o different_a and_o poor_a and_o contemptible_a be_v these_o to_o this_o heavenly_a joy_n for_o the_o gladness_n of_o their_o heart_n arise_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n from_o a_o interest_n in_o christ_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o eternal_a glory_n these_o sublime_a and_o spiritual_a object_n do_v ravish_v the_o godly_a soul_n so_o that_o the_o delight_n of_o a_o beast_n be_v not_o more_o inferior_a to_o the_o delight_n of_o a_o man_n as_o a_o rational_a man_n than_o the_o delight_n of_o a_o man_n be_v to_o he_o as_o a_o christian_a what_o the_o apostle_n speak_v concern_v the_o thought_n and_o word_n of_o a_o child_n comparative_o to_o a_o man_n the_o same_o be_v true_a also_o in_o respect_n of_o joy_n 1_o cor._n 13._o child_n have_v their_o joy_n they_o laugh_v as_o child_n they_o rejoice_v in_o their_o baby_n as_o child_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v man_n they_o can_v rejoice_v as_o child_n they_o can_v delight_v to_o play_v as_o they_o do_v when_o little_a boy_n thus_o when_o thou_o be_v once_o make_v godly_a and_o have_v taste_v of_o more_o excellent_a joy_n thou_o can_v not_o delight_v in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n nor_o in_o the_o great_a advantage_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v below_o thou_o thou_o say_v to_o thyself_o when_o inordinate_o rejoice_v in_o these_o thing_n as_o she_o do_v but_o false_o to_o david_n thou_o have_v make_v thyself_o like_o one_o of_o the_o vile_a fellow_n to_o day_n the_o godly_a man_n joy_n come_v from_o a_o high_a spring_n than_o the_o world_n do_v five_o hence_o in_o the_o next_o place_n no_o man_n can_v have_v this_o spiritual_a joy_n but_o such_o who_o be_v regenerate_v and_o bear_v of_o god_n who_o have_v a_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a life_n we_o see_v in_o nature_n that_o according_a to_o the_o several_a kind_n of_o life_n so_o there_o be_v several_a delight_n and_o proportionable_a thereunto_o the_o natural_a and_o animal_n life_n the_o rational_a life_n the_o sense_n have_v its_o delight_n and_o reason_n have_v its_o delght_n thus_o when_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o have_v his_o joy_n and_o his_o delight_n do_v not_o you_o read_v often_o of_o david_n that_o profess_v the_o word_n of_o god_n
be_v sweet_a than_o the_o honey_n or_o the_o honeycomb_n to_o he_o do_v he_o not_o say_v that_o his_o heart_n pant_v after_o god_n like_o a_o parch_a wilderness_n and_o more_o than_o the_o hart_n do_v after_o water_n and_o whence_o be_v all_o this_o but_o because_o david_n be_v a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v whole_o impossible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o any_o spiritual_a object_n till_o he_o himself_o be_v make_v holy_a as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v his_o disciple_n he_o have_v other_o meat_n to_o eat_v of_o than_o they_o know_v of_o so_o have_v every_o godly_a man_n other_o joy_n other_o delight_n than_o any_o natural_a man_n can_v conceive_v therefore_o do_v not_o keep_v off_o from_o godliness_n for_o fear_v of_o lose_v thy_o joy_n do_v not_o think_v that_o be_v to_o bid_v farewell_n to_o all_o cheerfulness_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n but_o rather_o thou_o never_o yet_o do_v know_v what_o true_a joy_n mean_v as_o yet_o thou_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o it_o for_o none_o but_o a_o regenerate_a man_n can_v enter_v into_o this_o joy_n six_o this_o joy_n which_o god_n put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n it_o be_v unspeakable_a and_o unexpressible_a like_o that_o new_a name_n and_o hide_a manna_n which_o none_o know_v but_o he_o that_o have_v it_o prov._n 14.12_o a_o stranger_n do_v not_o intermeddle_v with_o this_o joy_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o experimental_o perceive_v by_o we_o that_o a_o man_n can_v express_v they_o he_o feel_v they_o and_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o they_o yet_o he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o express_v this_o to_o another_o as_o life_n a_o man_n do_v feel_v and_o know_v he_o live_v yet_o who_o can_v tell_v another_o what_o his_o life_n be_v job_n be_v in_o bitterness_n and_o sorrow_n and_o it_o be_v above_o his_o expression_n his_o friend_n censure_v he_o but_o say_v he_o if_o your_o soul_n be_v in_o my_o stead_n you_o will_v judge_v otherwise_o if_o you_o feel_v what_o i_o feel_v you_o will_v be_v of_o another_o mind_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n you_o be_v apt_a to_o condemn_v the_o generation_n of_o the_o godly_a why_o will_v they_o be_v so_o strict_a and_o precise_a why_o will_v they_o not_o run_v into_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o sin_n and_o enjoy_v the_o ungodly_a pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n as_o other_o do_v oh_o know_v you_o speak_v foolish_o in_o this_o thing_n if_o your_o soul_n be_v in_o a_o godly_a man_n stead_n if_o you_o have_v ever_o feel_v what_o they_o feel_v if_o you_o have_v ever_o perceive_v upon_o your_o soul_n that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v you_o will_v quick_o change_v your_o mind_n and_o your_o conversation_n also_o you_o will_v then_o say_v a_o hour_n of_o this_o joy_n be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n of_o the_o worldly_a joy_n that_o a_o drop_n of_o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o ocean_n of_o carnal_a pleasure_n this_o make_v david_n call_v upon_o wicked_a man_n to_o taste_v and_o see_v how_o good_a god_n be_v if_o you_o will_v taste_v if_o you_o will_v set_v yourselves_o to_o try_v what_o this_o joy_n be_v you_o will_v then_o quick_o perceive_v a_o difference_n but_o none_o know_v this_o save_o those_o who_o have_v the_o experience_n of_o it_o seven_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o joy_n be_v to_o put_v a_o man_n upon_o all_o holy_a action_n upon_o active_a and_o serviceable_a way_n for_o god_n and_o thus_o in_o regard_n of_o its_o effect_n and_o operation_n it_o differ_v from_o worldly_a joy_n as_o much_o as_o heaven_n from_o earth_n or_o gold_n from_o dross_n for_o when_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v merry_a what_o do_v it_o put_v he_o upon_o but_o ungodly_a practice_n then_o they_o must_v go_v to_o their_o cup_n to_o their_o sport_n than_o they_o must_v go_v to_o their_o frolic_a and_o wanton_a play_n thus_o their_o joy_n make_v they_o very_o wicked_a whereas_o this_o godly_a joy_n put_v a_o man_n upon_o praise_v and_o bless_v of_o god_n be_v any_o man_n merry_a let_v he_o sing_v psalm_n jam._n 5.13_o it_o put_v he_o upon_o more_o servant_n and_o cheerful_a pray_v hear_v and_o no_o christian_a be_v so_o active_a and_o lively_a as_o he_o that_o be_v joyful_a neh_n 8.10_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o strength_n there_o need_v not_o then_o any_o great_a labour_n to_o discern_v the_o godly_a man_n mirth_n and_o the_o wicked_a man_n for_o the_o wicked_a he_o increase_v his_o sin_n thereby_o he_o be_v more_o harden_a to_o do_v wicked_o this_o joy_n be_v like_o the_o devil_n to_o the_o herd_n of_o swine_n which_o be_v hurry_v violent_o to_o hell_n they_o will_v never_o do_v that_o in_o a_o sober_a sad_a spirit_n they_o do_v then_o we_o have_v declare_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o heavenly_a gladness_n absolute_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o aggravation_n of_o it_o comparative_o to_o all_o other_o pleasure_n whatsoever_o that_o so_o all_o unregenerate_a man_n may_v see_v they_o live_v to_o their_o loss_n and_o that_o one_o day_n in_o godliness_n afford_v more_o true_a solid_a comfort_n than_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n though_o he_o shall_v live_v methusalem_n age_n and_o joy_n first_o spiritual_a joy_n exceed_v all_o worldly_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o its_o nature_n it_o be_v a_o unmixed_a joy_n there_o be_v nothing_o adhere_v to_o it_o to_o make_v a_o abatement_n or_o put_v a_o check_n to_o it_o whereas_o all_o worldly_a joy_n have_v gall_n as_o well_o as_o honey_n there_o be_v no_o rose_n grow_v without_o its_o prick_n look_v over_o all_o the_o worldly_a comfort_n that_o every_o where_o be_v enjoy_v see_v if_o they_o have_v not_o a_o but_o in_o they_o as_o be_v say_v of_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a he_o be_v a_o great_a man_n a_o honour_a man_n a_o rich_a man_n but_o he_o be_v a_o leper_n that_o take_v off_o from_o the_o rest_n so_o of_o every_o unregenerate_a man_n he_o have_v such_o a_o estate_n such_o friend_n such_o advantage_n to_o delight_n in_o but_o there_o be_v such_o a_o sin_n and_o such_o a_o sin_n which_o if_o right_o consider_v will_v mar_v all_o his_o comfort_n do_v not_o thou_o therefore_o set_v thy_o soul_n to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o take_v its_o ease_n for_o there_o be_v either_o the_o commission_n of_o such_o sin_n or_o the_o omission_n of_o such_o duty_n that_o will_v quick_o wound_v thy_o heart_n and_o take_v thou_o off_o from_o all_o thy_o jollity_n whereas_o now_o come_v to_o this_o heavenly_a joy_n there_o be_v joy_n and_o no_o cause_n of_o sorrow_n join_v with_o it_o this_o be_v like_o the_o upper_a region_n where_o there_o be_v no_o meteor_n look_v round_o about_o thou_o think_v of_o god_n of_o christ_n of_o eternity_n of_o death_n yea_o of_o sin_n and_o thou_o have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n work_v for_o thy_o good_a it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o godly_a be_v call_v to_o mourning_n when_o they_o be_v to_o fast_v and_o humble_a themselves_o but_o consider_v this_o holy_a mourning_n do_v not_o oppose_v but_o increase_v heavenly_a joy_n the_o more_o thou_o can_v mourn_v for_o thy_o own_o sin_n or_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o nation_n the_o great_a be_v thy_o joy_n in_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o such_o mourning_n do_v make_v thou_o abate_v of_o thy_o natural_a and_o earthly_a comfort_n but_o not_o at_o all_o of_o thy_o heavenly_a comfort_n so_o that_o heavenly_a joy_n be_v of_o such_o a_o pure_a nature_n that_o it_o be_v better_a than_o gold_n it_o can_v have_v any_o dross_n mix_v with_o it_o it_o be_v like_o the_o pure_a flame_n of_o the_o fire_n which_o can_v receive_v any_o mixture_n with_o it_o therefore_o do_v then_o consider_v over_o all_o thy_o worldly_a delight_n be_v there_o ever_o any_o that_o do_v afford_v mere_a matter_n of_o comfort_n be_v there_o not_o some_o occasion_n of_o grief_n of_o vexation_n of_o discontent_a as_o well_o whereas_o all_o heavenly_a thing_n afford_v only_a delight_n and_o no_o trouble_n at_o all_o second_o spiritual_a joy_n be_v more_o cordial_a and_o substantial_a it_o do_v more_o inward_o possess_v a_o man_n than_o any_o earthly_a joy_n can_v do_v disce_fw-la gaudere_fw-la say_v seneca_n thou_o have_v put_v it_o into_o my_o heart_n say_v david_n psal_n 33.21_o our_o heart_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o he_o and_o psal_n 3.5_o my_o heart_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o thy_o salvation_n hence_o you_o hear_v it_o be_v call_v unspeakable_a joy_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o joy_n be_v say_v to_o pass_v all_o understanding_n therefore_o our_o saviour_n pray_v joh._n 17._o that_o this_o joy_n may_v be_v fill_v be_v they_o a_o notable_a
expression_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o comfort_n god_n people_n have_v be_v of_o a_o far_o more_o solid_a and_o real_a nature_n than_o what_o man_n of_o the_o world_n have_v they_o be_v never_o hearty_o and_o true_o joyful_a for_o there_o be_v either_o the_o sting_n of_o some_o sin_n the_o guilt_n of_o conscience_n or_o the_o fear_n of_o some_o danger_n that_o do_v great_o check_v their_o joy_n insomuch_o that_o many_o time_n the_o ungodly_a of_o the_o world_n they_o put_v the_o best_a face_n upon_o thing_n they_o can_v they_o will_v bear_v it_o out_o as_o if_o they_o have_v peace_n and_o they_o have_v comfort_n when_o god_n know_v and_o their_o own_o heart_n feel_v many_o torment_a fear_n within_o they_o solomon_n speak_v full_o to_o this_o of_o a_o wicked_a man_n prov_n 14.13_o even_o in_o laughter_n the_o heart_n be_v sorrowful_a his_o meaning_n be_v that_o a_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o jollity_n and_o a_o carnal_a mirth_n yet_o he_o have_v but_o a_o sad_a heart_n and_o why_o there_o be_v guilt_n with_o he_o there_o be_v a_o conscience_n secret_o repine_v in_o he_o and_o though_o he_o strive_v to_o bear_v it_o down_o and_o will_v make_v a_o great_a noise_n than_o that_o yet_o these_o whisper_n and_o secret_a accusation_n do_v great_o weaken_v their_o joy_n for_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o conscience_n accuse_v thou_o though_o none_o in_o the_o world_n else_o can_v witness_v against_o thou_o quid_fw-la proder_n it_o tibi_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la conscium_fw-la habenti_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la what_o will_v it_o avail_v thou_o to_o have_v thy_o conscience_n accuse_v thou_o though_o there_o be_v no_o witness_n conscious_a with_o it_o be_v not_o belshazzar_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o jollity_n and_o excessive_a riot_n yet_o the_o appear_v of_o a_o hand-writing_n make_v he_o quake_v and_o his_o knee_n to_o tremble_v why_o may_v not_o he_o have_v think_v it_o have_v be_v some_o good_a angel_n or_o there_o be_v some_o writing_n for_o he_o to_o increase_v his_o kingdom_n no_o but_o before_o ever_o he_o can_v tell_v what_o it_o be_v he_o be_v afraid_a and_o tremble_v his_o heart_n be_v guilty_a semper_fw-la praesumit_fw-la saeva_fw-la mala_fw-la conscientia_fw-la thus_o take_v the_o most_o wanton_a loose_a and_o jolly_a sinner_n that_o be_v his_o heart_n be_v guilty_a he_o always_o think_v and_o fear_v the_o worse_a now_o the_o lord_n remember_v such_o and_o such_o sin_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o laugh_a and_o rant_a and_o sing_v of_o merry_a song_n that_o demonstrate_v a_o joyful_a heart_n no_o there_o may_v be_v sadness_n and_o terror_n within_o for_o all_o that_o whereas_o this_o spiritual_a joy_n fill_v up_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n whatsoever_o present_v itself_o he_o can_v rejoice_v at_o this_o time_n when_o david_n profess_v his_o joy_n it_o be_v outward_o a_o most_o sad_a time_n with_o he_o for_o expositor_n judge_v he_o be_v now_o pursue_v by_o absolom_n his_o own_o son_n who_o rise_v against_o he_o his_o people_n forsake_v he_o shimei_n rail_v at_o he_o tell_v he_o god_n have_v now_o avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o saul_n upon_o he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v occasion_v by_o his_o own_o wickedness_n yet_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o these_o sad_a circumstance_n he_o have_v so_o much_o joy_n in_o his_o heart_n so_o that_o the_o godly_a even_o while_o he_o weep_v and_o mourn_v have_v joy_n and_o the_o wicked_a even_o while_o he_o laugh_v and_o rant_v it_o yet_o have_v gnaw_v worm_n within_o he_o three_o heavenly_a joy_n be_v rational_a settle_v upon_o sound_n and_o solid_a ground_n if_o you_o see_v any_o godly_a man_n rejoice_v and_o walk_v with_o a_o cheerful_a spirit_n it_o be_v well_o do_v there_o be_v cause_n for_o it_o who_o may_v do_v it_o if_o not_o he_o whereas_o take_v any_o natural_a unregenerate_a man_n he_o have_v not_o the_o least_o cause_n of_o the_o least_o smile_n if_o he_o do_v as_o he_o shall_v do_v he_o will_v roar_v and_o cry_v out_o he_o will_v go_v and_o weep_v bitter_o he_o will_v smite_v upon_o the_o breast_n and_o the_o thigh_n say_v what_o shall_v i_o do_v oh_o my_o sin_n my_o sin_n now_o this_o be_v great_o to_o be_v consider_v who_o have_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o rejoice_v and_o who_o not_o tell_v not_o i_o such_o a_o man_n live_v a_o jolly_a merry_a life_n such_o a_o man_n be_v at_o his_o heart_n ease_n he_o live_v in_o his_o pleasure_n all_o the_o week_n long_o oh_o but_o what_o reason_n what_o cause_n have_v he_o to_o do_v so_o if_o he_o do_v right_o consider_v himself_o if_o he_o do_v lay_v his_o sin_n to_o his_o heart_n he_o will_v mourn_v and_o weep_v and_o bewail_v himself_o all_o the_o day_n long_o for_o what_o joy_n can_v thou_o have_v as_o long_o as_o thy_o sin_n be_v not_o pardon_v as_o long_o as_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o thou_o as_o long_o as_o thou_o may_v tumble_v into_o hell_n every_o moment_n be_v it_o for_o such_o a_o one_o as_o thou_o to_o be_v glad_a and_o laugh_v and_o take_v thy_o ease_n no_o our_o saviour_n luk_n 6.25_o pronounce_v a_o woe_n to_o you_o for_o you_o shall_v mourn_v though_o now_o you_o will_v not_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n say_v my_o god_n to_o the_o wicked_a man_n it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n chap._n 48_o 22._o stand_v off_o then_o joy_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o thou_o it_o be_v the_o godly_a man_n portion_n none_o may_v or_o have_v cause_n to_o walk_v cheerful_o but_o he_o for_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o he_o god_n be_v not_o angry_a with_o he_o his_o sin_n they_o be_v forgive_v death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n can_v do_v he_o no_o hurt_n whether_o poor_a or_o rich_a whether_o well_o or_o ill_o whether_o live_v or_o die_v he_o have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v phil_n 4_o 4._o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o again_o i_o say_v rejoice_v rejoice_v always_o there_o be_v no_o time_n wherein_o thou_o may_v not_o rejoice_v do_v not_o say_v i_o have_v this_o affliction_n i_o have_v this_o sad_a trial_n upon_o i_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n say_v the_o apostle_n let_v it_o be_v how_o it_o will_v be_v with_o thou_o rejoice_v always_o and_o indeed_o let_v the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a tremble_v let_v they_o cry_v out_o with_o horror_n those_o that_o have_v the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n upon_o they_o those_o that_o every_o moment_n may_v be_v adjudge_v to_o hell_n let_v they_o mourn_v and_o tremble_v but_o for_o a_o godly_a man_n he_o have_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o but_o to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o four_o joy_n from_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v a_o good_a end_n there_o will_v be_v no_o sad_a reckon_n for_o it_o afterward_o there_o will_v be_v no_o cause_n to_o repent_v of_o it_o but_o all_o worldly_a joy_n though_o it_o do_v please_v thou_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o sting_n in_o the_o tail_n of_o it_o there_o will_v be_v a_o bitter_a account_n to_o be_v make_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o this_o certain_o you_o shall_v right_o consider_v of_o these_o pleasure_n this_o carnal_a delight_n of_o i_o will_v it_o not_o cost_v dear_a hereafter_o will_v not_o all_o this_o honey_n turn_v into_o choler_n will_v not_o my_o torment_n be_v according_a to_o my_o pleasure_n what_o say_v solomon_n to_o his_o young_a man_n that_o be_v most_o give_v to_o follow_v his_o delight_n eccles_n 11.9_o rejoice_v o_o young_a man_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o heart_n pursue_v thy_o lust_n care_v for_o nothing_o trample_v god_n word_n under_o thy_o foot_n but_o know_v thou_o that_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o judgement_n and_o be_v not_o this_o like_o a_o hand-writing_n in_o the_o wall_n the_o thought_n of_o what_o will_v be_v hereafter_o may_v just_o strike_v out_o all_o thy_o present_a delight_n i_o be_o merry_a now_o laugh_v now_o but_o shall_v i_o do_v thus_o when_o death_n come_v shall_v i_o laugh_v when_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n i_o shall_v stand_v arraign_v at_o his_o tribunal_n oh_o do_v not_o admire_v such_o pleasure_n that_o will_v cost_v so_o dear_a at_o the_o latter_a end_n but_o for_o the_o godly_a man_n joy_n that_o will_v never_o shame_v he_o that_o will_v never_o grieve_v he_o but_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v about_o repentance_n it_o be_v a_o repentance_n never_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o thus_o here_o be_v a_o joy_n that_o be_v always_o to_o be_v joy_v in_o a_o joy_n that_o will_v never_o trouble_v thou_o hereafter_o whereas_o for_o all_o this_o worldly_a joy_n thou_o must_v mourn_v again_o it_o have_v be_v the_o time_n of_o thy_o sin_v and_o of_o thy_o rebel_n against_o god_n and_o therefore_o all_o this_o will_v turn_v into_o
express_v in_o two_o action_n as_o a_o manifestation_n of_o it_o with_o the_o reason_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o the_o action_n demonstrate_v his_o quiet_a spirit_n be_v 1._o his_o lie_v down_o in_o peace_n 2._o his_o sleep_a his_o lie_v down_o that_o denote_v he_o will_v not_o be_v interrupt_v in_o his_o natural_a action_n and_o ordinary_a course_n of_o life_n he_o will_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o go_v to_o bed_n for_o all_o that_o but_o because_o many_o go_v to_o bed_n and_o though_o they_o put_v of_o their_o clothes_n yet_o can_v lay_v aside_o their_o torment_a and_o vex_v care_n whereby_o though_o they_o lie_v down_o yet_o be_v restless_a and_o sleepless_a toss_v from_o one_o side_n to_o another_o therefore_o second_o he_o add_v i_o will_v take_v my_o sleep_n all_o that_o danger_n and_o trouble_n he_o be_v in_o shall_v not_o break_v his_o sleep_n he_o will_v take_v his_o rest_n as_o sweet_o as_o over_o he_o do_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o prosperity_n now_o certain_o if_o you_o do_v consider_v in_o what_o a_o temptation_n and_o danger_n david_n be_v in_o you_o will_v say_v its_o impossible_a or_o rather_o that_o faith_n which_o make_v we_o depend_v on_o god_n in_o such_o straits_n with_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o be_v no_o less_o admirable_a then_o miraculous_a faith_n it_o be_v general_o conclude_v on_o by_o the_o best_a interpreter_n that_o this_o psalm_n be_v make_v upon_o the_o same_o occasion_n which_o the_o immediate_a one_o go_v before_o be_v and_o that_o appear_v by_o the_o inscription_n to_o be_v compose_v when_o david_n flee_v from_o absolom_n so_o then_o david_n say_v he_o will_v lie_v down_o and_o sleep_v take_v his_o sweet_a rest_n when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o flight_n of_o he_o pursue_v by_o absolom_n and_o if_o you_o will_v know_v how_o grievous_a that_o be_v consult_v 2_o sam._n 15._o the_o whole_a chapter_n especial_o verse_n 30._o there_o you_o will_v find_v that_o absolom_n by_o fair_a pretence_n of_o justice_n and_o religion_n have_v steal_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o people_n to_o himself_o against_o david_n his_o father_n whereupon_o he_o make_v war_n raise_v a_o great_a army_n the_o conspiracy_n be_v carry_v on_o with_o great_a pride_n and_o policy_n insomuch_o that_o david_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v from_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o run_v whither_o he_o can_v for_o his_o safety_n all_o the_o people_n do_v general_o forsake_v he_o so_o that_o he_o with_o some_o few_o go_v up_o to_o mount_n olivet_n and_o as_o he_o go_v he_o weep_v and_o cover_v his_o face_n and_o go_v barefoot_a and_o all_o the_o people_n go_v with_o he_o and_o weep_v also_o what_o a_o sad_a sight_n be_v this_o to_o see_v david_n so_o religious_a a_o king_n so_o potent_a who_o have_v conquer_v so_o many_o enemy_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o this_o extremity_n yea_o his_o estate_n be_v so_o despicable_a that_o one_o man_n shimei_n chap._n 16._o come_v out_o and_o curse_v he_o rail_v on_o he_o come_v out_o thou_o bloody_a man_n thou_o man_n of_o beliall_a and_o throw_v stone_n and_o dust_n at_o he_o by_o all_o this_o you_o see_v his_o misery_n be_v great_a enough_o but_o add_v to_o this_o that_o at_o this_o very_a time_n david_n know_v god_n bring_v this_o evil_n upon_o he_o for_o his_o adultery_n and_o vriahs_n business_n the_o prophet_n have_v threaten_v he_o thus_o so_o that_o both_o god_n and_o man_n seem_v against_o he_o he_o be_v forsake_v of_o all_o and_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o for_o what_o this_o be_v he_o can_v easy_o tell_v the_o sin_n that_o make_v it_o thus_o with_o he_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o see_v his_o admirable_a faith_n in_o the_o powerful_a effect_n of_o it_o i_o will_v lay_v i_o down_o and_o sleep_v will_v you_o think_v that_o david_n can_v make_v such_o a_o psalm_n as_o this_o and_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n even_o when_o he_o go_v barefoot_a and_o weep_v in_o that_o direful_a manner_n this_o be_v so_o incredible_a that_o some_o have_v think_v it_o can_v not_o be_v literal_o true_a of_o david_n and_o have_v make_v mystical_a application_n of_o it_o to_o christ_n but_o upon_o very_o weak_a ground_n yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v this_o come_v from_o some_o stupidity_n or_o fool-hardinesse_n or_o from_o stoical_a apathy_n for_o david_n do_v in_o a_o high_a manner_n that_o which_o the_o stoic_n so_o high_o commend_v but_o can_v never_o themselves_o practice_n he_o add_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v it_o be_v not_o carnal_a security_n but_o holy_a confidence_n the_o reason_n be_v take_v from_o god_n protection_n and_o care_n he_o do_v not_o thus_o secure_o take_v his_o rest_n because_o though_o general_o forsake_v yet_o some_o mighty_a man_n of_o valour_n do_v cleave_v to_o he_o and_o he_o have_v old_a soldier_n whereas_o the_o conspirator_n be_v many_o of_o they_o inexpert_a nor_o do_v he_o think_v that_o he_o have_v out-witted_n they_o by_o send_v his_o faithful_a friend_n hushai_n into_o absolom_n court_n to_o undermine_v he_o while_o he_o pretend_v to_o serve_v he_o but_o all_o be_v from_o god_n thou_o alone_o make_v i_o dwell_v in_o safety_n it_o be_v god_n and_o he_o only_o that_o can_v protect_v and_o defend_v he_o in_o the_o expression_n of_o david_n security_n i_o will_v both_o lay_v i_o down_o and_o sleep_v the_o hebrew_a word_n juchdan_n have_v trouble_v interpreter_n the_o septuagint_n translate_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o simul_n some_o pariter_fw-la austin_n make_v in_o id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la to_o be_v god_n he_o will_v rest_v in_o god_n who_o only_o be_v i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o but_o that_o be_v ignorance_n of_o the_o hebrew_n some_o relate_v it_o to_o david_n enemy_n he_o will_v lie_v down_o with_o they_o though_o they_o be_v million_o about_o he_o as_o psalm_n 3._o other_o relate_v it_o to_o his_o own_o company_n that_o do_v faithful_o adhere_v to_o he_o in_o this_o his_o temptation_n but_o they_o seem_v to_o take_v it_o most_o genuine_o that_o relate_v it_o to_o the_o action_n i_o will_v both_o lie_v down_o and_o sleep_v one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o fiducial_a frame_n of_o his_o spirit_n from_o this_o explication_n observe_v that_o faith_n depend_v on_o god_n in_o a_o lively_a and_o vigorous_a manner_n affliction_n do_v so_o comfort_n and_o quiet_v the_o heart_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o great_a straits_n as_o if_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o certain_o david_n can_v not_o have_v speak_v more_o secure_o and_o quiet_o at_o that_o time_n when_o all_o the_o people_n have_v make_v he_o king_n h●●_n enemy_n vanquish_v and_o he_o settle_v in_o his_o kingdom_n therefore_o to_o say_v this_o when_o he_o be_v in_o imminent_a danger_n of_o all_o and_o when_o he_o be_v so_o pursue_v that_o he_o can_v not_o tell_v where_o he_o shall_v lie_v down_o or_o where_o he_o shall_v sleep_v this_o be_v wonderful_a oh_o how_o may_v the_o very_a name_n of_o this_o doctrine_n shame_v the_o best_a and_o choice_a of_o god_n child_n for_o little_a affliction_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v name_v to_o david_n they_o disquiet_v thou_o they_o make_v thou_o toss_v up_o and_o down_o and_o thou_o be_v restless_a in_o thy_o spirit_n oh_o do_v thou_o shame_v thyself_o and_o thy_o trouble_a heart_n for_o ever_o by_o this_o precedent_n which_o david_n have_v set_v thou_o and_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v this_o be_v but_o a_o sudden_a flash_n and_o lightning_n in_o david_n you_o may_v find_v that_o this_o fire_n do_v always_o warm_v his_o breast_n for_o look_v to_o the_o three_o psalm_n make_v by_o he_o while_o he_o be_v in_o his_o flight_n he_o say_v there_o the_o same_o thing_n only_o in_o the_o prterperfect-tense_n what_o he_o here_o say_v he_o will_v do_v you_o may_v there_o see_v he_o have_v do_v oh_o you_o will_v think_v david_n have_v little_a occasion_n to_o make_v psalm_n to_o be_v proclaim_v his_o confidence_n in_o god_n rather_o to_o have_v have_v his_o whole_a soul_n take_v up_o with_o his_o military_a affair_n but_o thus_o faith_n do_v put_v on_o spiritual_a armoury_n upon_o his_o soul_n and_o that_o you_o may_v not_o think_v only_a david_n can_v do_v this_o see_v the_o like_a secure_a and_o holy_a confidence_n in_o the_o prophet_n habbakuk_n hab._n 3.17_o 18._o ed._n but_o let_v we_o explicate_v the_o doctrine_n by_o several_a proposition_n as_o first_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o faith_n depend_v and_o adhere_v to_o god_n to_o know_v this_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o scripture_n attribute_n three_o act_n to_o faith_n and_o so_o faith_n be_v describe_v synecdochical_o by_o one_o of_o they_o for_o its_o whole_a nature_n thus_o faith_n be_v sometime_o knowledge_n sometime_o it_o be_v assent_n to_o the_o truth_n reveal_v and_o sometime_o it_o be_v a_o
when_o in_o the_o battle_n be_v take_v by_o his_o enemy_n and_o they_o ready_a to_o kill_v he_o yet_o he_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o god_n move_v their_o heart_n to_o depart_v from_o he_o 2_o chron._n 18.31_o so_o in_o the_o thieving_n and_o robbery_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v god_n that_o divert_v man_n from_o design_v and_o do_v mischief_n to_o such_o family_n while_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n wen●_n up_o to_o keep_v their_o feast_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o order_v man_n heart_n so_o that_o none_o shall_v desire_v their_o land_n exo_n 34.24_o use_v of_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n in_o all_o these_o common_a preservation_n every_o day_n every_o morning_n and_o evening_n thou_o have_v cause_n to_o wonder_v at_o his_o power_n and_o goodness_n under_o all_o thy_o temptation_n what_o befall_v another_o god_n tell_v thou_o what_o may_v come_v to_o thou_o oh_o therefore_o do_v not_o take_v thy_o life_n and_o health_n god_n give_v thou_o and_o spend_v it_o upon_o the_o devil_n service_n remember_v thou_o live_v upon_o god_n mercy_n if_o he_o withdraw_v for_o a_o moment_n any_o sudden_a evil_n may_v fall_v upon_o thou_o ⁂_o finis_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n a_o admiration_n of_o admiration_n of_o minister_n person_n when_o sinful_a p._n 48_o affliction_n how_o affliction_n effect_v good_a in_o a_o man_n p._n 179_o 181_o agreement_n the_o motive_n of_o agreement_n be_v godliness_n p._n 33_o agreement_n among_o the_o wicked_a easy_o break_v do_v not_o always_o denote_v a_o true_a church_n p._n 41_o protestant_n agree_v in_o fundamental_o p._n 41_o b_o babe_n babe_n in_o christ_n p._n 5_o babe_n direct_v p._n 8_o backbyte_n of_o backbyte_n p._n 35_o building_n god_n people_n be_v his_o building_n p._n 118_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o building_n p._n 141_o of_o a_o twofold_a building_n upon_o the_o foundation_n p._n ibid._n how_o a_o minister_n must_v take_v heed_n how_o he_o build_v on_o the_o foundation_n p._n 142_o of_o their_o building_n gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n p._n 157_o boast_v of_o boast_v in_o man_n p._n 265_o see_v glory_v c_o carnal_a carnal_a its_o several_a signification_n p._n 5_o in_o what_o sense_n a_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v carnal_a p._n 21_o ceremony_n of_o ceremony_n p._n 11_o cause_n cause_n of_o grace_n principal_n and_o subordinate_a p._n 59_o principal_n the_o ministry_n p._n 68_o efficient_a the_o spirit_n of_o god_n ibid._n church_n the_o church_n duty_n p._n 20_o of_o church-government_n p._n 84_o of_o the_o holiness_n of_o church_n p._n 118_o the_o matter_n of_o a_o church_n ibid._n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v his_o temple_n p._n 193_o the_o church_n privilege_n relation_n and_o title_n shall_v be_v a_o spur_n to_o duty_n ibid._n the_o church_n riches_n enumerate_v p._n 270_o christ_n christ_n just_o exalt_v p._n 30_o as_o the_o foundation_n p._n 21_o 145_o christ_n may_v be_v sinful_o set_v up_o and_o how_o p._n 58_o what_o it_o be_v to_o preach_v christ_n p._n 145_o 153_o the_o godly_a and_o all_o they_o can_v do_v be_v christ_n p._n 294_o christian_n christian_n shall_v ●●ve_v as_o those_o that_o be_v more_o than_o mere_a man_n p._n 42_o contention_n contention_n argue_v man_n to_o be_v so_o far_o carnal_a p._n 33_o contention_n be_v twofold_a good_a ●vil_n p._n 34_o 36_o 37_o the_o cause_n of_o sinful_a strife_n p._n 34_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o civil_a religious_a matter_n p._n 35_o 36_o the_o aggravation_n of_o this_o sin_n p._n 36_o d_o damnation_n of_o damnation_n p._n 222_o death_n death_n the_o godly_a man_n advantage_n p._n 282_o deacon_n deacon_n the_o word_n use_v diverse_o p._n 66_o defile_v defiler_n of_o god_n temple_n with_o corrupt_a doctrine_n p._n 216_o difference_n difference_n between_o christian_a and_o christian_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n p_o 5.22_o discipline_n discipline_n how_o severe_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n p._n 7_o division_n the_o sad_a effect_n of_o division_n p._n 99_o direction_n for_o time_n of_o division_n ibid._n difficulty_n the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v most_o godly_a p._n 192_o divinity_n divinity_n contain_v a_o twofold_a matter_n 1._o fundamental_o and_o 2._o conclusion_n from_o they_o e_o increase_n the_o increase_n and_o success_n of_o preach_v from_o god_n p._n 86_o ends._n of_o corrupt_a end_n in_o a_o minister_n and_o good_a end_n p._n 63_o 64_o envy_n envy_n the_o word_n use_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o in_o a_o bad_a sense_n p._n 25_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n p_o 25_o its_o degree_n p_o 26_o its_o object_n p._n 27_o it_o be_v subject_a p._n 28_o its_o aggravation_n p._n 29_o its_o remedy_n p._n 32_o how_o difference_v from_o zeal_n p._n 32_o error_n error_n consideration_n about_o it_o p._n 142_o etc._n etc._n error_n be_v hay_n and_o stubble_n though_o not_o fundamental_a p._n 161_o man_n may_v be_v erroneous_a and_o not_o know_v it_o 161_o error_n great_a lesser_n p._n 121_o 161_o why_o call_v hay_n and_o stubble_n its_o secret_a way_n shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a p._n 169_o may_v endanger_v salvation_n p._n 189_o its_o cause_n p._n 169_o defile_v god_n church_n p._n 217_o erroneous_a time_n sad_a time_n p._n 174_o how_o god_n will_v punish_v the_o erroneous_a p._n 186_o 219_o how_o far_o a_o godly_a man_n may_v err_v and_o how_o a_o godly_a man_n err_v differ_v from_o a_o wicked_a man_n p._n 220_o the_o difference_n between_o error_n and_o heresy_n p._n 190_o see_v doctrine_n eternal_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n f_o family_n of_o family-duty_n p._n 3_o see_v relation_n wickdnesse_n p._n 3_o 4_o 13_o such_o as_o they_o be_v such_o be_v the_o commonwealth_n p._n 14_o faith_n i'faith_o its_o eminency_n p._n 70_o nature_n and_o act_n p._n 71_o its_o foundation_n viz._n the_o scripture_n p._n 126_o effect_n p._n 72_o know_v its_o ground_n why_o though_o it_o comprehend_v not_o the_o matter_n believe_v p._n 71_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o of_o justification_n p._n 72_o fundamental_a of_o fundamental_o p._n 2_o the_o ignorance_n of_o they_o lamentable_a p._n 2_o reduce_v to_o several_a head_n p_o 14_o be_v easy_a p._n 15_o knowledge_n of_o they_o necessary_a ibid._n foundation_n foundation_n in_o religion_n careful_o to_o be_v lay_v p._n 125_o four_o unquestionable_a scripture_n foundation_n i._o the_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v viz._n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n p._n 125_o 126._o how_o careful_a minister_n shall_v be_v to_o build_v truth_n upon_o that_o foundation_n p._n 141_o four_o rot_a foundation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n magistrate_n enthusiasm_n mere_a humane_a reason_n p._n 127_o ii_o the_o worship_n and_o necessary_a service_n of_o god_n p._n 129_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v ibid._n it_o must_v have_v a_o divine_a command_n p._n 131_o three_o rot_a foundation_n in_o worship_n ibid._n iii_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o p._n 125_o this_o foundation_n of_o practice_n consist_v in_o 1._o it_o be_v directory_n god_n word_n 2._o the_o justification_n of_o our_o person_n 3._o a_o receive_a power_n from_o christ_n 4._o a_o renew_v and_o sanctify_a nature_n p._n 133_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o foundation_n p._n 134_o four_o rot_a foundation_n that_o man_n build_v upon_o in_o reference_n to_o practice_n p._n 135_o how_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n p._n 145_o etc._n etc._n how_o the_o apostle_n the_o foundation_n p._n 145_o etc._n etc._n fool._n wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n be_v fool_n p._n 229_o g_o glory_n the_o degree_n of_o glory_n p._n 101_o 105_o of_o glory_v in_o man_n the_o sinfulness_n of_o this_o sin_n p._n 261_o and_o how_o many_o way_n that_o be_v do_v ibid._n see_v boast_v godly_a their_o characteristical_a privilege_n p._n 155_o 265_o of_o godliness_n in_o the_o power_n of_o it_o p._n 42_o 105_o grace_n free_a grace_n to_o be_v exalt_v and_o praise_v and_o how_o p._n 121_o why_o the_o godly_a be_v so_o sensible_a of_o free_a grace_n p._n 123_o impediment_n of_o this_o duty_n p._n 124_o gospel_n gospel_n how_o great_a a_o mercy_n to_o a_o people_n p._n 79_o government_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n p._n 120_o growth_n in_o grace_n growth_n in_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n press_v p._n 1●_n 91_o intensive_a extensive_a ibid._n ground_n of_o religion_n see_v principles_n and_o fundamental_o h_o hay_o of_o build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n p._n 161_o hell_n of_o hell_n p._n 222_o heresy_n heretic_n how_o god_n will_v punish_v heretic_n p._n 220_o hide_n how_o vain_a and_o sinful_a to_o hide_v our_o sin_n p._n 166_o etc._n etc._n holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n and_o a_o person_n p._n 201_o etc._n etc._n why_o call_v a_o spirit_n ibid._n heaven_n heaven_n